[go: up one dir, main page]

WO2024034659A1 - Organic electroluminescent element and electronic appliance - Google Patents

Organic electroluminescent element and electronic appliance Download PDF

Info

Publication number
WO2024034659A1
WO2024034659A1 PCT/JP2023/029232 JP2023029232W WO2024034659A1 WO 2024034659 A1 WO2024034659 A1 WO 2024034659A1 JP 2023029232 W JP2023029232 W JP 2023029232W WO 2024034659 A1 WO2024034659 A1 WO 2024034659A1
Authority
WO
WIPO (PCT)
Prior art keywords
group
substituted
unsubstituted
carbon atoms
formula
Prior art date
Legal status (The legal status is an assumption and is not a legal conclusion. Google has not performed a legal analysis and makes no representation as to the accuracy of the status listed.)
Ceased
Application number
PCT/JP2023/029232
Other languages
French (fr)
Japanese (ja)
Inventor
佑典 高橋
裕亮 糸井
将太 田中
拓人 深見
司 澤藤
Current Assignee (The listed assignees may be inaccurate. Google has not performed a legal analysis and makes no representation or warranty as to the accuracy of the list.)
Idemitsu Kosan Co Ltd
Original Assignee
Idemitsu Kosan Co Ltd
Priority date (The priority date is an assumption and is not a legal conclusion. Google has not performed a legal analysis and makes no representation as to the accuracy of the date listed.)
Filing date
Publication date
Application filed by Idemitsu Kosan Co Ltd filed Critical Idemitsu Kosan Co Ltd
Priority to CN202380057985.9A priority Critical patent/CN119654309A/en
Priority to KR1020257002290A priority patent/KR20250020705A/en
Publication of WO2024034659A1 publication Critical patent/WO2024034659A1/en
Anticipated expiration legal-status Critical
Ceased legal-status Critical Current

Links

Images

Classifications

    • CCHEMISTRY; METALLURGY
    • C07ORGANIC CHEMISTRY
    • C07DHETEROCYCLIC COMPOUNDS
    • C07D307/00Heterocyclic compounds containing five-membered rings having one oxygen atom as the only ring hetero atom
    • C07D307/77Heterocyclic compounds containing five-membered rings having one oxygen atom as the only ring hetero atom ortho- or peri-condensed with carbocyclic rings or ring systems
    • C07D307/91Dibenzofurans; Hydrogenated dibenzofurans
    • CCHEMISTRY; METALLURGY
    • C07ORGANIC CHEMISTRY
    • C07CACYCLIC OR CARBOCYCLIC COMPOUNDS
    • C07C211/00Compounds containing amino groups bound to a carbon skeleton
    • C07C211/43Compounds containing amino groups bound to a carbon skeleton having amino groups bound to carbon atoms of six-membered aromatic rings of the carbon skeleton
    • C07C211/57Compounds containing amino groups bound to a carbon skeleton having amino groups bound to carbon atoms of six-membered aromatic rings of the carbon skeleton having amino groups bound to carbon atoms of six-membered aromatic rings being part of condensed ring systems of the carbon skeleton
    • C07C211/61Compounds containing amino groups bound to a carbon skeleton having amino groups bound to carbon atoms of six-membered aromatic rings of the carbon skeleton having amino groups bound to carbon atoms of six-membered aromatic rings being part of condensed ring systems of the carbon skeleton with at least one of the condensed ring systems formed by three or more rings
    • CCHEMISTRY; METALLURGY
    • C07ORGANIC CHEMISTRY
    • C07DHETEROCYCLIC COMPOUNDS
    • C07D209/00Heterocyclic compounds containing five-membered rings, condensed with other rings, with one nitrogen atom as the only ring hetero atom
    • C07D209/56Ring systems containing three or more rings
    • C07D209/80[b, c]- or [b, d]-condensed
    • C07D209/82Carbazoles; Hydrogenated carbazoles
    • C07D209/86Carbazoles; Hydrogenated carbazoles with only hydrogen atoms, hydrocarbon or substituted hydrocarbon radicals, directly attached to carbon atoms of the ring system
    • CCHEMISTRY; METALLURGY
    • C09DYES; PAINTS; POLISHES; NATURAL RESINS; ADHESIVES; COMPOSITIONS NOT OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR; APPLICATIONS OF MATERIALS NOT OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR
    • C09KMATERIALS FOR MISCELLANEOUS APPLICATIONS, NOT PROVIDED FOR ELSEWHERE
    • C09K11/00Luminescent, e.g. electroluminescent, chemiluminescent materials
    • C09K11/06Luminescent, e.g. electroluminescent, chemiluminescent materials containing organic luminescent materials
    • HELECTRICITY
    • H10SEMICONDUCTOR DEVICES; ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES NOT OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR
    • H10KORGANIC ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES
    • H10K50/00Organic light-emitting devices
    • H10K50/10OLEDs or polymer light-emitting diodes [PLED]
    • HELECTRICITY
    • H10SEMICONDUCTOR DEVICES; ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES NOT OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR
    • H10KORGANIC ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES
    • H10K50/00Organic light-emitting devices
    • H10K50/10OLEDs or polymer light-emitting diodes [PLED]
    • H10K50/14Carrier transporting layers
    • H10K50/15Hole transporting layers
    • HELECTRICITY
    • H10SEMICONDUCTOR DEVICES; ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES NOT OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR
    • H10KORGANIC ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES
    • H10K50/00Organic light-emitting devices
    • H10K50/10OLEDs or polymer light-emitting diodes [PLED]
    • H10K50/14Carrier transporting layers
    • H10K50/15Hole transporting layers
    • H10K50/156Hole transporting layers comprising a multilayered structure
    • HELECTRICITY
    • H10SEMICONDUCTOR DEVICES; ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES NOT OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR
    • H10KORGANIC ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES
    • H10K50/00Organic light-emitting devices
    • H10K50/10OLEDs or polymer light-emitting diodes [PLED]
    • H10K50/14Carrier transporting layers
    • H10K50/16Electron transporting layers
    • HELECTRICITY
    • H10SEMICONDUCTOR DEVICES; ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES NOT OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR
    • H10KORGANIC ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES
    • H10K85/00Organic materials used in the body or electrodes of devices covered by this subclass
    • H10K85/60Organic compounds having low molecular weight
    • H10K85/615Polycyclic condensed aromatic hydrocarbons, e.g. anthracene
    • HELECTRICITY
    • H10SEMICONDUCTOR DEVICES; ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES NOT OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR
    • H10KORGANIC ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES
    • H10K85/00Organic materials used in the body or electrodes of devices covered by this subclass
    • H10K85/60Organic compounds having low molecular weight
    • H10K85/631Amine compounds having at least two aryl rest on at least one amine-nitrogen atom, e.g. triphenylamine
    • H10K85/633Amine compounds having at least two aryl rest on at least one amine-nitrogen atom, e.g. triphenylamine comprising polycyclic condensed aromatic hydrocarbons as substituents on the nitrogen atom
    • HELECTRICITY
    • H10SEMICONDUCTOR DEVICES; ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES NOT OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR
    • H10KORGANIC ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES
    • H10K85/00Organic materials used in the body or electrodes of devices covered by this subclass
    • H10K85/60Organic compounds having low molecular weight
    • H10K85/631Amine compounds having at least two aryl rest on at least one amine-nitrogen atom, e.g. triphenylamine
    • H10K85/636Amine compounds having at least two aryl rest on at least one amine-nitrogen atom, e.g. triphenylamine comprising heteroaromatic hydrocarbons as substituents on the nitrogen atom
    • HELECTRICITY
    • H10SEMICONDUCTOR DEVICES; ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES NOT OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR
    • H10KORGANIC ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES
    • H10K85/00Organic materials used in the body or electrodes of devices covered by this subclass
    • H10K85/60Organic compounds having low molecular weight
    • H10K85/649Aromatic compounds comprising a hetero atom
    • H10K85/657Polycyclic condensed heteroaromatic hydrocarbons
    • H10K85/6572Polycyclic condensed heteroaromatic hydrocarbons comprising only nitrogen in the heteroaromatic polycondensed ring system, e.g. phenanthroline or carbazole
    • HELECTRICITY
    • H10SEMICONDUCTOR DEVICES; ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES NOT OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR
    • H10KORGANIC ELECTRIC SOLID-STATE DEVICES
    • H10K85/00Organic materials used in the body or electrodes of devices covered by this subclass
    • H10K85/60Organic compounds having low molecular weight
    • H10K85/649Aromatic compounds comprising a hetero atom
    • H10K85/657Polycyclic condensed heteroaromatic hydrocarbons
    • H10K85/6574Polycyclic condensed heteroaromatic hydrocarbons comprising only oxygen in the heteroaromatic polycondensed ring system, e.g. cumarine dyes
    • CCHEMISTRY; METALLURGY
    • C07ORGANIC CHEMISTRY
    • C07CACYCLIC OR CARBOCYCLIC COMPOUNDS
    • C07C2603/00Systems containing at least three condensed rings
    • C07C2603/02Ortho- or ortho- and peri-condensed systems
    • C07C2603/04Ortho- or ortho- and peri-condensed systems containing three rings
    • C07C2603/06Ortho- or ortho- and peri-condensed systems containing three rings containing at least one ring with less than six ring members
    • C07C2603/10Ortho- or ortho- and peri-condensed systems containing three rings containing at least one ring with less than six ring members containing five-membered rings
    • C07C2603/12Ortho- or ortho- and peri-condensed systems containing three rings containing at least one ring with less than six ring members containing five-membered rings only one five-membered ring
    • C07C2603/18Fluorenes; Hydrogenated fluorenes

Definitions

  • the present invention relates to an organic electroluminescent device and an electronic device including the organic electroluminescent device.
  • an organic electroluminescent device (hereinafter sometimes referred to as an "organic EL device") is composed of an anode, a cathode, and an organic layer sandwiched between the anode and the cathode.
  • an organic EL device When a voltage is applied between the two electrodes, electrons are injected from the cathode side and holes from the anode side into the light emitting region, and the injected electrons and holes recombine in the light emitting region to generate an excited state. Light is emitted when the state returns to the ground state. Therefore, the development of compounds and device structures that efficiently transport electrons or holes to a light-emitting region and facilitate recombination of electrons and holes is important in obtaining high-performance organic EL devices.
  • Patent Documents 1 to 7 disclose compounds used as materials for organic electroluminescent devices.
  • the present invention was made to solve the above-mentioned problems, and aims to provide an organic EL device with improved device performance and an electronic device including such an organic EL device.
  • the present invention provides a compound represented by the following formula (1) [hereinafter sometimes referred to as compound (1)].
  • R a1 to R a4 are each independently a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms, and R a1 and R a2 , and R a3 and R a4 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
  • R 1 , R 2 , and R b1 to R b12 are each independently, Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group, Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms; A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), A group represented by -O-(R 904 ), A group represented by -S-(R 905 ) or
  • Ar 1 is a group represented by any of the following formulas (i) to (iii). ]
  • R b13 to R b16 are each independently, Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group, Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
  • Ar 2 is a substituted or unsubstituted phenylene group or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthylene group.
  • Ar 3 is a substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group, or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group when two adjacent groups in R b13 to R b16 are not bonded to each other ; When two adjacent groups in R b16 are bonded to each other to form a benzene ring, it is a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group, or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group.
  • n1 is 0, 1, or 2.
  • n2 is an integer of 1 or more.
  • R x is a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 3 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms (excluding an adamantyl group).
  • n2 is an integer of 2 or more, it is an alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
  • R x is (a) bonded to the benzene ring instead of at least one selected from R b13 to R b16 , or (b) R x (c) is bonded to at least one group selected from the group consisting of Ar 2 and Ar 3 , or ( a ) - Meets two or more aspects selected from the group consisting of (c).
  • X is -O-, -S-, or -N(-R 3 )- [R 3 is an alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms or an aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms. ].
  • R c1 , R c2 , R b17 to R b22 and R d1 to R d6 are each independently, Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group, Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms; A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), A group represented by -O-(R 904 ), A group
  • n3 is 0 or 1.
  • *3 indicates the bonding position with the nitrogen atom shown in formula (1).
  • *4 and *5 indicate that they are bonded to the benzene ring instead of any one of R d1 to R d6 , and are bonded to different positions, respectively. However, when n3 is 0, *3 and *6 are directly connected without going through *4 and *5. *6 indicates that it is bonded to the benzene ring instead of any one of R b17 to R b19 .
  • R y1 is an alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
  • n4 is an integer of 1 or more.
  • R y1 indicates the bonding position of R y1 , and R y1 is bonded to the benzene ring instead of (d) at least one selected from R c1 , R c2 and R b17 to R b22 ; (e) It is bonded to at least one group selected from R c1 , R c2 , R 3 and R b17 to R b22 , or satisfies both aspects (d) and (e) above.
  • R b23 to R b30 and R e1 to R e5 are each independently, Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group, Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms; A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), A group represented by -O-(R 904 ), A group represented by -Si(R 901 )
  • *8 indicates the bonding position with the nitrogen atom shown in formula (1). *9 indicates that the nitrogen atom shown in formula (iii) is bonded to the benzene ring instead of any one of R e1 to R e5 .
  • R y2 is a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
  • n5 is an integer of 1 or more.
  • R y2 indicates the bonding position of R y2 , and R y2 is bonded to the benzene ring instead of (f) at least one selected from R b23 to R b30 , or (g) R b23 to R b30. It is bonded to at least one group selected from R b30 , or satisfies both aspects (f) and (g) above. ]
  • the present invention provides an organic electroluminescent device comprising the compound (1). In yet another aspect, the present invention provides an electronic device including the organic electroluminescent device.
  • An organic EL device containing the compound represented by formula (1) above exhibits improved device performance.
  • FIG. 1 is a schematic diagram showing an example of a layer structure of an organic EL element according to one embodiment of the present invention.
  • FIG. 3 is a schematic diagram illustrating another example of the layer structure of an organic EL element according to one embodiment of the present invention.
  • FIG. 3 is a schematic diagram illustrating another example of the layer structure of an organic EL element according to one embodiment of the present invention.
  • the hydrogen atom includes isotopes having different numbers of neutrons, ie, light hydrogen (protium), deuterium (deuterium), and tritium (tritium).
  • a hydrogen atom that is, a light hydrogen atom, a deuterium atom, or Assume that tritium atoms are bonded.
  • the number of carbon atoms forming a ring refers to the number of carbon atoms constituting the ring itself of a compound having a structure in which atoms are bonded in a cyclic manner (for example, a monocyclic compound, a fused ring compound, a bridged compound, a carbocyclic compound, and a heterocyclic compound). represents the number of carbon atoms among the atoms.
  • a monocyclic compound, a fused ring compound, a bridged compound, a carbocyclic compound, and a heterocyclic compound represents the number of carbon atoms among the atoms.
  • the carbon contained in the substituent is not included in the number of carbon atoms forming the ring.
  • the "number of ring carbon atoms" described below is the same unless otherwise specified.
  • a benzene ring has 6 carbon atoms
  • a naphthalene ring has 10 carbon atoms
  • a pyridine ring has 5 carbon atoms
  • a furan ring has 4 carbon atoms.
  • the number of ring carbon atoms in the 9,9-diphenylfluorenyl group is 13
  • the number of ring carbon atoms in the 9,9'-spirobifluorenyl group is 25.
  • the benzene ring is substituted with an alkyl group as a substituent, for example, the number of carbon atoms of the alkyl group is not included in the number of carbon atoms forming the benzene ring.
  • the number of ring carbon atoms in the benzene ring substituted with an alkyl group is 6. Further, when the naphthalene ring is substituted with an alkyl group as a substituent, for example, the number of carbon atoms of the alkyl group is not included in the number of carbon atoms forming the naphthalene ring. Therefore, the number of ring carbon atoms in the naphthalene ring substituted with an alkyl group is 10.
  • the number of ring-forming atoms refers to compounds with a structure in which atoms are bonded in a cyclic manner (e.g., monocyclic, fused ring, and ring assembly) (e.g., monocyclic compound, fused ring compound, bridged compound, carbocyclic compound). Represents the number of atoms that constitute the ring itself (compounds and heterocyclic compounds). Atoms that do not form a ring (for example, a hydrogen atom that terminates a bond between atoms that form a ring) and atoms that are included in a substituent when the ring is substituted with a substituent are not included in the number of ring-forming atoms.
  • the "number of ring-forming atoms" described below is the same unless otherwise specified.
  • the number of ring atoms in the pyridine ring is 6, the number of ring atoms in the quinazoline ring is 10, and the number of ring atoms in the furan ring is 5.
  • the number of hydrogen atoms bonded to the pyridine ring or atoms constituting substituents is not included in the number of atoms forming the pyridine ring. Therefore, the number of ring atoms of the pyridine ring to which hydrogen atoms or substituents are bonded is six.
  • carbon number XX to YY in the expression “substituted or unsubstituted ZZ group with carbon number XX to YY” represents the number of carbon atoms when the ZZ group is unsubstituted, and is substituted. Do not include the number of carbon atoms in substituents.
  • "YY" is larger than “XX”, “XX” means an integer of 1 or more, and “YY” means an integer of 2 or more.
  • number of atoms XX to YY in the expression “substituted or unsubstituted ZZ group with number of atoms XX to YY” represents the number of atoms when the ZZ group is unsubstituted, and is substituted. Do not include the number of atoms of substituents in case.
  • "YY" is larger than “XX”, “XX” means an integer of 1 or more, and "YY" means an integer of 2 or more.
  • an unsubstituted ZZ group refers to a case where a "substituted or unsubstituted ZZ group" is an "unsubstituted ZZ group", and a substituted ZZ group refers to a "substituted or unsubstituted ZZ group". represents the case where is a "substituted ZZ group".
  • "unsubstituted” in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted ZZ group” means that the hydrogen atom in the ZZ group is not replaced with a substituent.
  • the hydrogen atom in the "unsubstituted ZZ group” is a light hydrogen atom, a deuterium atom, or a tritium atom.
  • substituted in the case of “substituted or unsubstituted ZZ group” means that one or more hydrogen atoms in the ZZ group are replaced with a substituent.
  • substitution in the case of "BB group substituted with AA group” similarly means that one or more hydrogen atoms in the BB group are replaced with an AA group.
  • the number of ring carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted aryl group” described herein is 6 to 50, preferably 6 to 30, more preferably 6 to 18, unless otherwise specified herein. .
  • the number of ring atoms of the "unsubstituted heterocyclic group” described herein is 5 to 50, preferably 5 to 30, more preferably 5 to 18, unless otherwise specified herein. be.
  • the number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted alkyl group” described herein is 1 to 50, preferably 1 to 20, more preferably 1 to 6, unless otherwise specified herein.
  • the number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted alkenyl group” described herein is 2 to 50, preferably 2 to 20, more preferably 2 to 6, unless otherwise specified herein.
  • the number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted alkynyl group” described herein is 2 to 50, preferably 2 to 20, more preferably 2 to 6, unless otherwise specified herein.
  • the number of ring carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted cycloalkyl group” described herein is 3 to 50, preferably 3 to 20, more preferably 3 to 6. be.
  • the number of ring carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted arylene group” described herein is 6 to 50, preferably 6 to 30, more preferably 6 to 18. .
  • the number of ring atoms of the "unsubstituted divalent heterocyclic group” described herein is 5 to 50, preferably 5 to 30, more preferably 5 unless otherwise specified herein. ⁇ 18.
  • the number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted alkylene group” described herein is 1 to 50, preferably 1 to 20, more preferably 1 to 6, unless otherwise specified herein.
  • Specific examples (specific example group G1) of the "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group” described in this specification include the following unsubstituted aryl groups (specific example group G1A) and substituted aryl groups (specific example group G1B). ) etc.
  • the unsubstituted aryl group refers to the case where the "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group” is an "unsubstituted aryl group"
  • the substituted aryl group refers to the case where the "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group” is (Refers to the case where it is a "substituted aryl group.)
  • aryl group includes both "unsubstituted aryl group” and “substituted aryl group.”
  • “Substituted aryl group” means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms of "unsubstituted aryl group” are replaced with a substituent.
  • Examples of the "substituted aryl group” include a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms of the "unsubstituted aryl group” in the specific example group G1A below are replaced with a substituent, and a substituted aryl group in the following specific example group G1B. Examples include: The examples of “unsubstituted aryl group” and “substituted aryl group” listed here are just examples, and the "substituted aryl group” described in this specification includes the following specific examples.
  • aryl group (specific example group G1A): phenyl group, p-biphenyl group, m-biphenyl group, o-biphenyl group, p-terphenyl-4-yl group, p-terphenyl-3-yl group, p-terphenyl-2-yl group, m-terphenyl-4-yl group, m-terphenyl-3-yl group, m-terphenyl-2-yl group, o-terphenyl-4-yl group, o-terphenyl-3-yl group, o-terphenyl-2-yl group, 1-naphthyl group, 2-naphthyl group, anthryl group, benzanthryl group, phenanthryl group, benzophenanthryl group, phenalenyl group, pyrenyl group, chrysenyl group, benzocrysenyl group,
  • aryl group (specific example group G1B): o-tolyl group, m-tolyl group, p-tolyl group, para-xylyl group, meta-xylyl group, ortho-xylyl group, para-isopropylphenyl group, meta-isopropylphenyl group, ortho-isopropylphenyl group, para-t-butylphenyl group, meta-t-butylphenyl group, ortho-t-butylphenyl group, 3,4,5-trimethylphenyl group, 9,9-dimethylfluorenyl group, 9,9-diphenylfluorenyl group 9,9-bis(4-methylphenyl)fluorenyl group, 9,9-bis(4-isopropylphenyl)fluorenyl group, 9,9-bis(4-t-butylphenyl)fluorenyl group, cyanophenyl group, triphenylsily
  • heterocyclic group is a cyclic group containing at least one heteroatom as a ring-forming atom. Specific examples of heteroatoms include nitrogen atom, oxygen atom, sulfur atom, silicon atom, phosphorus atom, and boron atom.
  • a “heterocyclic group” as described herein is a monocyclic group or a fused ring group.
  • a “heterocyclic group” as described herein is an aromatic heterocyclic group or a non-aromatic heterocyclic group.
  • substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group examples include the following unsubstituted heterocyclic group (specific example group G2A) and substituted heterocyclic group ( Examples include specific example group G2B).
  • unsubstituted heterocyclic group refers to the case where "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group” is “unsubstituted heterocyclic group”
  • substituted heterocyclic group refers to "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group”
  • Heterocyclic group refers to a "substituted heterocyclic group."
  • heterocyclic group refers to "unsubstituted heterocyclic group” and “substituted heterocyclic group.” including both.
  • “Substituted heterocyclic group” means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms of "unsubstituted heterocyclic group” are replaced with a substituent.
  • Specific examples of the "substituted heterocyclic group” include a group in which the hydrogen atom of the "unsubstituted heterocyclic group” in specific example group G2A is replaced, and examples of substituted heterocyclic groups in specific example group G2B below. Can be mentioned.
  • Specific example group G2A includes, for example, the following unsubstituted heterocyclic groups containing a nitrogen atom (specific example group G2A1), unsubstituted heterocyclic groups containing an oxygen atom (specific example group G2A2), and unsubstituted heterocyclic groups containing a sulfur atom.
  • heterocyclic group (specific example group G2A3), and a monovalent heterocyclic group derived by removing one hydrogen atom from the ring structure represented by the following general formulas (TEMP-16) to (TEMP-33) (Specific example group G2A4).
  • Specific example group G2B includes, for example, the following substituted heterocyclic groups containing a nitrogen atom (specific example group G2B1), substituted heterocyclic groups containing an oxygen atom (specific example group G2B2), and substituted heterocyclic groups containing a sulfur atom.
  • group Specific Example Group G2B3
  • one or more hydrogen atoms of a monovalent heterocyclic group derived from a ring structure represented by the following general formulas (TEMP-16) to (TEMP-33) are substituents.
  • Includes substituted groups (Example Group G2B4).
  • ⁇ Unsubstituted heterocyclic group containing a nitrogen atom (specific example group G2A1): pyrrolyl group, imidazolyl group, pyrazolyl group, triazolyl group, Tetrazolyl group, oxazolyl group, isoxazolyl group, oxadiazolyl group, thiazolyl group, isothiazolyl group, thiadiazolyl group, pyridyl group, pyridazinyl group, pyrimidinyl group, pyrazinyl group, triazinyl group, indolyl group, isoindolyl group, indolizinyl group, quinolidinyl group, quinolyl group, isoquinolyl group, cinnolyl group, phthalazinyl group, quinazolinyl group, quinoxalinyl group, benzimidazolyl group, indazolyl group, phenanthrolinyl
  • ⁇ Unsubstituted heterocyclic group containing an oxygen atom (specific example group G2A2): frill group, oxazolyl group, isoxazolyl group, oxadiazolyl group, xanthenyl group, benzofuranyl group, isobenzofuranyl group, dibenzofuranyl group, naphthobenzofuranyl group, benzoxazolyl group, benzisoxazolyl group, phenoxazinyl group, morpholino group, dinaphthofuranyl group, azadibenzofuranyl group, diazadibenzofuranyl group, Azanaphthobenzofuranyl group, and diazanaphthobenzofuranyl group.
  • X A and Y A are each independently an oxygen atom, a sulfur atom, NH, or CH 2 . However, at least one of X A and Y A is an oxygen atom, a sulfur atom, or NH.
  • the monovalent heterocyclic group derived from the represented ring structure includes a monovalent group obtained by removing one hydrogen atom from these NH or CH 2 .
  • Substituted heterocyclic group containing a nitrogen atom (specific example group G2B1): (9-phenyl)carbazolyl group, (9-biphenylyl)carbazolyl group, (9-phenyl)phenylcarbazolyl group, (9-naphthyl)carbazolyl group, diphenylcarbazol-9-yl group, phenylcarbazol-9-yl group, methylbenzimidazolyl group, ethylbenzimidazolyl group, phenyltriazinyl group, biphenylyltriazinyl group, diphenyltriazinyl group, phenylquinazolinyl group, and biphenylylquinazolinyl group.
  • ⁇ Substituted heterocyclic group containing an oxygen atom (specific example group G2B2): phenyldibenzofuranyl group, methyldibenzofuranyl group, A t-butyldibenzofuranyl group and a monovalent residue of spiro[9H-xanthene-9,9'-[9H]fluorene].
  • ⁇ Substituted heterocyclic group containing a sulfur atom (specific example group G2B3): phenyldibenzothiophenyl group, methyldibenzothiophenyl group, A t-butyldibenzothiophenyl group and a monovalent residue of spiro[9H-thioxanthene-9,9'-[9H]fluorene].
  • one or more hydrogen atoms of a monovalent heterocyclic group refers to a hydrogen atom bonded to a ring-forming carbon atom of the monovalent heterocyclic group, and at least one of XA and YA is NH. It means one or more hydrogen atoms selected from the hydrogen atom bonded to the nitrogen atom in the case where XA and YA are CH2, and the hydrogen atom of the methylene group when one of XA and YA is CH2.
  • Specific examples (specific example group G3) of the "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" described in this specification include the following unsubstituted alkyl groups (specific example group G3A) and substituted alkyl groups (specific example group G3B). ).
  • an unsubstituted alkyl group refers to a case where a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group” is an "unsubstituted alkyl group," and a substituted alkyl group refers to a case where a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group” is (Refers to the case where it is a "substituted alkyl group.)
  • alkyl group when it is simply referred to as an "alkyl group,” it includes both an "unsubstituted alkyl group” and a “substituted alkyl group.”
  • “Substituted alkyl group” means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms in "unsubstituted alkyl group” are replaced with a substituent.
  • substituted alkyl groups include groups in which one or more hydrogen atoms in the following “unsubstituted alkyl groups” (specific example group G3A) are replaced with substituents, and substituted alkyl groups (specific examples examples include group G3B).
  • the alkyl group in "unsubstituted alkyl group” means a chain alkyl group. Therefore, the "unsubstituted alkyl group” includes a linear "unsubstituted alkyl group” and a branched "unsubstituted alkyl group”.
  • ⁇ Unsubstituted alkyl group (specific example group G3A): methyl group, ethyl group, n-propyl group, isopropyl group, n-butyl group, isobutyl group, s-butyl group and t-butyl group.
  • ⁇ Substituted alkyl group (specific example group G3B): heptafluoropropyl group (including isomers), pentafluoroethyl group, 2,2,2-trifluoroethyl group and trifluoromethyl group.
  • “Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group” Specific examples of the "substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group" (specific example group G4) described in this specification include the following unsubstituted alkenyl groups (specific example group G4A) and substituted alkenyl groups (specific example group G4B), etc.
  • the term "unsubstituted alkenyl group” refers to the case where "substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group” is “unsubstituted alkenyl group”
  • “substituted alkenyl group” refers to "substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group”).
  • alkenyl group includes both “unsubstituted alkenyl group” and “substituted alkenyl group.”
  • Substituted alkenyl group means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms in "unsubstituted alkenyl group” are replaced with a substituent.
  • Specific examples of the "substituted alkenyl group” include the following "unsubstituted alkenyl group” (specific example group G4A) having a substituent, and the substituted alkenyl group (specific example group G4B). It will be done.
  • ⁇ Unsubstituted alkenyl group (specific example group G4A): vinyl group, allyl group, 1-butenyl group, 2-butenyl group and 3-butenyl group.
  • ⁇ Substituted alkenyl group (specific example group G4B): 1,3-butandienyl group, 1-methylvinyl group, 1-methylallyl group, 1,1-dimethylallyl group, 2-methylallyl group and 1,2-dimethylallyl group.
  • ⁇ alkynyl group'' and ⁇ substituted alkynyl group means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms in "unsubstituted alkynyl group” are replaced with a substituent.
  • Specific examples of the "substituted alkynyl group” include groups in which one or more hydrogen atoms in the following "unsubstituted alkynyl group” (specific example group G5A) are replaced with a substituent.
  • Specific examples (specific example group G6) of the "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group” described in this specification include the following unsubstituted cycloalkyl groups (specific example group G6A) and substituted cycloalkyl groups ( Examples include specific example group G6B).
  • unsubstituted cycloalkyl group refers to the case where "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group” is “unsubstituted cycloalkyl group”, and the term “substituted cycloalkyl group” refers to "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group”).
  • cycloalkyl group refers to the case where "substituted cycloalkyl group” is used.
  • cycloalkyl group when simply referring to “cycloalkyl group”, it refers to "unsubstituted cycloalkyl group” and “substituted cycloalkyl group”. including both.
  • Substituted cycloalkyl group means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms in "unsubstituted cycloalkyl group” are replaced with a substituent.
  • Specific examples of the "substituted cycloalkyl group” include the following "unsubstituted cycloalkyl group” (specific example group G6A) in which one or more hydrogen atoms are replaced with a substituent, and a substituted cycloalkyl group. (Specific example group G6B) and the like can be mentioned.
  • cycloalkyl group (specific example group G6A): cyclopropyl group, cyclobutyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group and 2-norbornyl group.
  • cycloalkyl group (specific example group G6B): 4-methylcyclohexyl group.
  • G7 Group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 )
  • Specific examples of the group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ) described in this specification include: -Si(G1)(G1), -Si(G1)(G2)(G2), -Si(G1)(G1)(G2), -Si(G2)(G2)(G2), -Si(G3)(G3)(G3), and -Si(G6)(G6)(G6) can be mentioned.
  • G1 is a "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group" described in specific example group G1.
  • G2 is a "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group” described in specific example group G2.
  • G3 is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group” described in specific example group G3.
  • G6 is a "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group” described in specific example group G6.
  • a plurality of G2's in Si(G2) (G2) (G2) are mutually the same or different.
  • a plurality of G3's in Si(G3) (G3) are mutually the same or different.
  • - A plurality of G6's in Si(G6) (G6) (G6) are mutually the same or different.
  • G8 Specific examples of the group represented by -O-(R 904 ) described in this specification (specific example group G8) include: -O(G1), -O(G2), -O (G3) and -O (G6) can be mentioned.
  • G1 is a "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group” described in specific example group G1.
  • G2 is a "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group” described in specific example group G2.
  • G3 is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group” described in specific example group G3.
  • G6 is a "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group” described in specific example group G6.
  • G9 Group represented by -S-(R 905 )
  • Specific examples of the group represented by -S-(R 905 ) described in this specification include: -S (G1), -S (G2), -S (G3) and -S (G6) can be mentioned.
  • G1 is a "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group” described in specific example group G1.
  • G2 is a "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group” described in specific example group G2.
  • G3 is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group” described in specific example group G3.
  • G6 is a "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group” described in specific example group G6.
  • G10 Group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 )
  • Specific examples of the group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 ) described in this specification include: -N(G1)(G1), -N(G2)(G2), -N (G1) (G2), -N (G3) (G3), and -N (G6) (G6) can be mentioned.
  • G1 is a "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group” described in specific example group G1.
  • G2 is a "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group” described in specific example group G2.
  • G3 is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group” described in specific example group G3.
  • G6 is a "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group” described in specific example group G6.
  • -N(G1) A plurality of G1's in (G1) are mutually the same or different.
  • -N(G2) A plurality of G2's in (G2) are the same or different.
  • -N(G3) A plurality of G3's in (G3) are mutually the same or different.
  • -N(G6) A plurality of G6's in (G6) are mutually the same or different.
  • halogen atom specifically examples include a fluorine atom, a chlorine atom, a bromine atom, an iodine atom, and the like.
  • substituted or unsubstituted fluoroalkyl group refers to a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" in which at least one hydrogen atom bonded to a carbon atom constituting the alkyl group is replaced with a fluorine atom. It also includes a group in which all hydrogen atoms bonded to the carbon atoms constituting the alkyl group in a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group” are replaced with fluorine atoms (perfluoro group).
  • the number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted fluoroalkyl group” is from 1 to 50, preferably from 1 to 30, and more preferably from 1 to 18, unless otherwise specified herein.
  • “Substituted fluoroalkyl group” means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms of the "fluoroalkyl group” are replaced with a substituent.
  • substituted fluoroalkyl group described in this specification includes a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms bonded to the carbon atom of the alkyl chain in the "substituted fluoroalkyl group” is further replaced with a substituent, and Also included are groups in which one or more hydrogen atoms of a substituent in a "substituted fluoroalkyl group” are further replaced with a substituent.
  • substituents of a substituent in a "substituted fluoroalkyl group” are further replaced with a substituent.
  • the "unsubstituted fluoroalkyl group” include a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms in the "alkyl group” (specific example group G3) are replaced with a fluorine atom.
  • ⁇ “Substituted or unsubstituted haloalkyl group” means that at least one hydrogen atom bonded to a carbon atom constituting the alkyl group in the "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group” is replaced with a halogen atom. It means a group, and also includes a group in which all hydrogen atoms bonded to carbon atoms constituting an alkyl group in a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group” are replaced with halogen atoms.
  • the number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted haloalkyl group” is from 1 to 50, preferably from 1 to 30, and more preferably from 1 to 18.
  • “Substituted haloalkyl group” means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms of the "haloalkyl group” are replaced with a substituent.
  • the "substituted haloalkyl group" described in this specification includes a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms bonded to the carbon atom of the alkyl chain in the "substituted haloalkyl group” is further replaced with a substituent; Also included are groups in which one or more hydrogen atoms of a substituent in the "haloalkyl group” are further replaced with a substituent.
  • Specific examples of the "unsubstituted haloalkyl group” include a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms in the "alkyl group” (specific example group G3) are replaced with a halogen atom.
  • a haloalkyl group is sometimes referred to as a halogenated alkyl group.
  • a specific example of the "substituted or unsubstituted alkoxy group" described in this specification is a group represented by -O(G3), where G3 is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkoxy group” described in specific example group G3.
  • the number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted alkoxy group” is from 1 to 50, preferably from 1 to 30, and more preferably from 1 to 18, unless otherwise specified herein.
  • ⁇ “Substituted or unsubstituted alkylthio group” A specific example of the "substituted or unsubstituted alkylthio group” described in this specification is a group represented by -S(G3), where G3 is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkylthio group” described in specific example group G3. "unsubstituted alkyl group”.
  • the number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted alkylthio group” is from 1 to 50, preferably from 1 to 30, and more preferably from 1 to 18, unless otherwise specified herein.
  • a specific example of the "substituted or unsubstituted aryloxy group” described in this specification is a group represented by -O(G1), where G1 is a "substituted or unsubstituted aryloxy group” described in specific example group G1. or an unsubstituted aryl group.
  • the number of ring carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted aryloxy group" is from 6 to 50, preferably from 6 to 30, and more preferably from 6 to 18, unless otherwise specified herein.
  • a specific example of the "substituted or unsubstituted arylthio group” described in this specification is a group represented by -S(G1), where G1 is the "substituted or unsubstituted arylthio group” described in the specific example group G1.
  • G1 is the "substituted or unsubstituted arylthio group” described in the specific example group G1.
  • the number of ring carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted arylthio group” is from 6 to 50, preferably from 6 to 30, and more preferably from 6 to 18, unless otherwise specified herein.
  • ⁇ “Substituted or unsubstituted trialkylsilyl group” A specific example of the "trialkylsilyl group” described in this specification is a group represented by -Si(G3)(G3)(G3), where G3 is a group described in specific example group G3. It is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group.” - A plurality of G3's in Si(G3) (G3) (G3) are mutually the same or different. The number of carbon atoms in each alkyl group of the "trialkylsilyl group” is from 1 to 50, preferably from 1 to 20, and more preferably from 1 to 6, unless otherwise specified herein.
  • a specific example of the "substituted or unsubstituted aralkyl group” described in this specification is a group represented by -(G3)-(G1), where G3 is a group described in specific example group G3. It is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group", and G1 is a "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group” described in the specific example group G1.
  • an "aralkyl group” is a group in which the hydrogen atom of an "alkyl group” is replaced with an "aryl group” as a substituent, and is one embodiment of a “substituted alkyl group.”
  • An “unsubstituted aralkyl group” is an "unsubstituted alkyl group” substituted with an "unsubstituted aryl group”, and the number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted aralkyl group” is determined unless otherwise specified herein. , 7 to 50, preferably 7 to 30, more preferably 7 to 18.
  • substituted or unsubstituted aralkyl groups include benzyl group, 1-phenylethyl group, 2-phenylethyl group, 1-phenylisopropyl group, 2-phenylisopropyl group, phenyl-t-butyl group, ⁇ - Naphthylmethyl group, 1- ⁇ -naphthylethyl group, 2- ⁇ -naphthylethyl group, 1- ⁇ -naphthylisopropyl group, 2- ⁇ -naphthylisopropyl group, ⁇ -naphthylmethyl group, 1- ⁇ -naphthylethyl group , 2- ⁇ -naphthylethyl group, 1- ⁇ -naphthylisopropyl group, and 2- ⁇ -naphthylisopropyl group.
  • the substituted or unsubstituted aryl group described herein is preferably a phenyl group, p-biphenyl group, m-biphenyl group, o-biphenyl group, p-terphenyl group, unless otherwise specified herein.
  • the substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group described herein is preferably a pyridyl group, a pyrimidinyl group, a triazinyl group, a quinolyl group, an isoquinolyl group, a quinazolinyl group, a benzimidazolyl group, or a phenol group, unless otherwise specified herein.
  • Nanthrolinyl group carbazolyl group (1-carbazolyl group, 2-carbazolyl group, 3-carbazolyl group, 4-carbazolyl group, or 9-carbazolyl group), benzocarbazolyl group, azacarbazolyl group, diazacarbazolyl group , dibenzofuranyl group, naphthobenzofuranyl group, azadibenzofuranyl group, diazadibenzofuranyl group, dibenzothiophenyl group, naphthobenzothiophenyl group, azadibenzothiophenyl group, diazadibenzothiophenyl group, ( 9-phenyl)carbazolyl group ((9-phenyl)carbazol-1-yl group, (9-phenyl)carbazol-2-yl group, (9-phenyl)carbazol-3-yl group, or (9-phenyl)carbazole -4-yl group), (9-b
  • carbazolyl group is specifically any of the following groups unless otherwise specified in the specification.
  • the (9-phenyl)carbazolyl group is specifically any of the following groups, unless otherwise stated in the specification.
  • dibenzofuranyl group and dibenzothiophenyl group are specifically any of the following groups unless otherwise specified in the specification.
  • the substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group described herein is preferably a methyl group, ethyl group, propyl group, isopropyl group, n-butyl group, isobutyl group, and t- Butyl group, etc.
  • the "substituted or unsubstituted arylene group” described in this specification refers to 2 derived from the above “substituted or unsubstituted aryl group” by removing one hydrogen atom on the aryl ring. It is the basis of valence.
  • the "substituted or unsubstituted arylene group” (specific example group G12), by removing one hydrogen atom on the aryl ring from the "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group” described in specific example group G1
  • Examples include divalent groups derived from the derivatives.
  • the "substituted or unsubstituted divalent heterocyclic group” described herein refers to the "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group" described above in which one hydrogen atom on the heterocycle is removed. It is a divalent group derived from Specific examples of the "substituted or unsubstituted divalent heterocyclic group" (specific example group G13) include one hydrogen on the heterocycle from the "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group” described in specific example group G2. Examples include divalent groups derived by removing atoms.
  • the "substituted or unsubstituted alkylene group” described in this specification refers to 2 derived from the above "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group” by removing one hydrogen atom on the alkyl chain. It is the basis of valence.
  • a "substituted or unsubstituted alkylene group” (specific example group G14), one hydrogen atom on the alkyl chain is removed from the "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group” described in specific example group G3. Examples include divalent groups derived from the derivatives.
  • the substituted or unsubstituted arylene group described herein is preferably a group represented by any of the following general formulas (TEMP-42) to (TEMP-68).
  • Q 1 to Q 10 are each independently a hydrogen atom or a substituent.
  • * represents the bonding position.
  • Q 1 to Q 10 are each independently a hydrogen atom or a substituent.
  • Formulas Q 9 and Q 10 may be bonded to each other via a single bond to form a ring.
  • * represents the bonding position.
  • Q 1 to Q 8 are each independently a hydrogen atom or a substituent.
  • * represents the bonding position.
  • the substituted or unsubstituted divalent heterocyclic group described herein is preferably one of the following general formulas (TEMP-69) to (TEMP-102), unless otherwise specified herein. It is.
  • Q 1 to Q 9 are each independently a hydrogen atom or a substituent.
  • Q 1 to Q 8 are each independently a hydrogen atom or a substituent.
  • the set of two or more adjacent R 921 to R 930 is one set. is a set of R 921 and R 922 , a set of R 922 and R 923 , a set of R 923 and R 924 , a set of R 924 and R 930 , a set of R 930 and R 925 , a set of R 925 and A set of R 926 , a set of R 926 and R 927 , a set of R 927 and R 928 , a set of R 928 and R 929 , and a set of R 929 and R 921 .
  • the above-mentioned "one or more sets” means that two or more sets of the above-mentioned two or more adjacent sets may form a ring at the same time.
  • R 921 and R 922 combine with each other to form ring Q A
  • R 925 and R 926 combine with each other to form ring Q B
  • the above general formula (TEMP-103) The anthracene compound represented is represented by the following general formula (TEMP-104).
  • a set of two or more adjacent items forms a ring is not only the case where a set of "two" adjacent items are combined as in the example above, but also the case where a set of "three or more adjacent items” form a ring. This also includes the case where two sets are combined.
  • R 921 and R 922 combine with each other to form a ring Q A
  • R 922 and R 923 combine with each other to form a ring Q C
  • the three adjacent to each other (R 921 , R 922 and R 923 ) combine with each other to form a ring and are condensed to the anthracene mother skeleton.
  • anthracene compound represented by the general formula (TEMP-103) is as follows: It is represented by the general formula (TEMP-105). In the following general formula (TEMP-105), ring Q A and ring Q C share R 922 .
  • the "single ring” or “fused ring” that is formed may be a saturated ring or an unsaturated ring as a structure consisting only of the formed ring. Even if “one set of two adjacent rings” forms a “monocycle” or “fused ring”, the “single ring” or “fused ring” is a saturated ring, or Can form unsaturated rings.
  • ring Q A and ring Q B formed in the general formula (TEMP-104) are each a "monocyclic ring” or a "fused ring.”
  • the ring Q A and the ring Q C formed in the general formula (TEMP-105) are "fused rings”.
  • Ring Q A and ring Q C in the general formula (TEMP-105) are a fused ring by condensation of ring Q A and ring Q C.
  • ring Q A in the general formula (TEMP-104) is a benzene ring
  • ring Q A is a monocyclic ring.
  • ring Q A in the general formula (TEMP-104) is a naphthalene ring
  • ring Q A is a fused ring.
  • Unsaturated ring means an aromatic hydrocarbon ring or an aromatic heterocycle.
  • “Saturated ring” means an aliphatic hydrocarbon ring or a non-aromatic heterocycle.
  • Specific examples of the aromatic hydrocarbon ring include structures in which the groups listed as specific examples in specific example group G1 are terminated with hydrogen atoms.
  • Specific examples of the aromatic heterocycle include structures in which the aromatic heterocyclic group listed as a specific example in specific example group G2 is terminated with a hydrogen atom.
  • Specific examples of the aliphatic hydrocarbon ring include structures in which the groups listed as specific examples in specific example group G6 are terminated with hydrogen atoms.
  • Form a ring means to form a ring with only a plurality of atoms of a parent skeleton, or with a plurality of atoms of a parent skeleton and one or more arbitrary elements.
  • the ring Q A shown in the general formula (TEMP-104) formed by R 921 and R 922 bonding to each other is a carbon atom of the anthracene skeleton to which R 921 is bonded, and an anthracene bond to which R 922 is bonded. It means a ring formed by a carbon atom in the skeleton and one or more arbitrary elements.
  • R 921 and R 922 form a ring Q A
  • the carbon atom of the anthracene skeleton to which R 921 is bonded the carbon atom of the anthracene skeleton to which R 922 is bonded, and four carbon atoms.
  • R 921 and R 922 form a monocyclic unsaturated ring
  • the ring formed by R 921 and R 922 is a benzene ring.
  • the "arbitrary element” is preferably at least one element selected from the group consisting of carbon element, nitrogen element, oxygen element, and sulfur element, unless otherwise specified in this specification.
  • a bond that does not form a ring may be terminated with a hydrogen atom or the like, or may be substituted with an "arbitrary substituent” described below.
  • the ring formed is a heterocycle.
  • the number of "one or more arbitrary elements" constituting a monocyclic or condensed ring is preferably 2 to 15, more preferably 3 to 12. , more preferably 3 or more and 5 or less.
  • a “monocycle” is preferred among “monocycle” and “fused ring.” Unless otherwise specified herein, the "unsaturated ring” is preferred between the “saturated ring” and the “unsaturated ring”. Unless otherwise stated herein, a “monocycle” is preferably a benzene ring. Unless otherwise stated herein, an “unsaturated ring” is preferably a benzene ring.
  • one or more pairs of two or more adjacent groups are “bonded with each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted monocycle” or “bonded with each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted fused ring”
  • one or more of the pairs of two or more adjacent atoms are bonded to each other to form a bond with a plurality of atoms of the parent skeleton and one or more of the 15 or more atoms.
  • a substituted or unsubstituted "unsaturated ring” is formed with at least one element selected from the group consisting of the following carbon elements, nitrogen elements, oxygen elements, and sulfur elements.
  • the substituent is, for example, the "arbitrary substituent” described below.
  • Specific examples of the substituent in the case where the above-mentioned “single ring” or “fused ring” has a substituent are the substituents described in the section of "Substituent described herein” above.
  • the substituent is, for example, the "arbitrary substituent” described below.
  • substituents in the case where the above-mentioned "single ring” or “fused ring” has a substituent are the substituents described in the section of "Substituent described herein" above. The above applies to cases in which "one or more sets of two or more adjacent rings combine with each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted monocycle," and “one or more sets of two or more adjacent rings.” are combined with each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted condensed ring ("the case where they are combined to form a ring").
  • the substituent in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted” (herein referred to as "arbitrary substituent")
  • arbitrary substituent For example, unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), -O-(R 904 ), -S- (R 905 ), -N(R 906 )(R 907 ), Halogen atom, cyano group, nitro group, A group selected from the group consisting of an unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
  • R 901s When two or more R 901s exist, the two or more R 901s are the same or different, When two or more R 902s exist, the two or more R 902s are the same or different, When two or more R 903s exist, the two or more R 903s are the same or different, When two or more R 904s exist, the two or more R 904s are the same or different, When two or more R 905s exist, the two or more R 905s are the same or different, When two or more R 906s exist, the two or more R 906s are the same or different, When two or more R 907s exist, the two or more R 907s are the same or different.
  • the substituent in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted” is an alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, A group selected from the group consisting of an aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms and a heterocyclic group having 5 to 50 ring atoms.
  • the substituent in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted” is an alkyl group having 1 to 18 carbon atoms, A group selected from the group consisting of an aryl group having 6 to 18 ring carbon atoms and a heterocyclic group having 5 to 18 ring atoms.
  • any adjacent substituents may form a "saturated ring" or "unsaturated ring", preferably a substituted or unsubstituted saturated ring. Forms a membered ring, a substituted or unsubstituted saturated 6-membered ring, a substituted or unsubstituted unsaturated 5-membered ring, or a substituted or unsubstituted unsaturated 6-membered ring, more preferably a benzene ring do.
  • any substituent may further have a substituent.
  • the substituent which the arbitrary substituent further has is the same as the above arbitrary substituent.
  • the numerical range expressed using "AA-BB” has the numerical value AA written before “AA-BB” as the lower limit, and the numerical value BB written after "AA-BB”. means a range that includes as an upper limit value.
  • R a1 to R a4 are each independently a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms; R a1 and R a2 and R a3 and R a4 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
  • R a1 to R a4 see the description of "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" in the section "Substituents described in this specification”.
  • the reference can be limited to the range of 1 to 30 carbon atoms.
  • the unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms is preferably a methyl group.
  • R a1 to R a4 For details of the substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms represented by R a1 to R a4 , see “Substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group" in the section of "Substituents described in this specification”.
  • the description can be limited to the range of 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms. When R a1 and R a2 and R a3 and R a4 are bonded to each other to form a ring, they form a spiro ring.
  • the spiro ring is a hydrocarbon ring or a heterocycle, and is selected from a monocyclic ring, a fused ring, a bridged bicyclo ring, and a bridged tricyclo ring. Examples of substituted or unsubstituted spiro rings are shown below, but are not limited thereto. * indicates the bonding position of the fluorene skeleton to the benzene ring.
  • the spiro ring is preferably the following spiro ring.
  • the spiro ring is more preferably the following spiro ring.
  • R 1 , R 2 , and R b1 to R b12 are each independently, Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group, Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms; A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), A group represented by -O-(R 904 ), In the group represented by -S-(R 905 )
  • R 1 , R 2 , and R b1 to R b12 represent a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms; Heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms, group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), group represented by -O-(R 904 ), -S-( The group represented by R 905 ) and the
  • R 1 and R 2 are each independently preferably a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, and more preferably a hydrogen atom.
  • R b1 to R b12 are each independently preferably a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, and more preferably a hydrogen atom or a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms.
  • R b1 to R b12 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
  • the ring include a benzene ring and a naphthalene ring. In this case, the ring forms a condensed ring together with the benzene ring of the fluorene skeleton, that is, forms a naphthalene ring and an anthracene ring, respectively.
  • the ring is preferably a benzene ring.
  • Ar 1 is a group represented by any of the following formulas (i) to (iii). Although Ar 1 is not particularly limited, it is preferably a group represented by formula (i) or a group represented by formula (ii). Hereinafter, formula (i), formula (ii), and formula (iii) will be explained in detail in this order.
  • R b13 to R b16 are each independently, Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group, Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms; A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), A group represented by -O-(R 904 ), In the group represented by -S-(R 905 ) or the group represented by
  • Ar 2 is a substituted or unsubstituted phenylene group or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthylene group.
  • Ar 3 is a substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group, or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group when two adjacent groups in R b13 to R b16 are not bonded to each other ; When two adjacent groups in R b16 are bonded to each other to form a benzene ring, it is a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group, or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group.
  • n1 is 0, 1, or 2. *1 indicates the bonding position with the nitrogen atom shown in formula (1).
  • n2 is an integer of 1 or more.
  • R x is a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 3 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms (excluding an adamantyl group).
  • n2 is an integer of 2 or more, it is an alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
  • R x is either (a) bonded to the benzene ring instead of at least one selected from R b13 to R b16 , or (b) R x (c) is bonded to at least one group selected from the group consisting of Ar 2 and Ar 3 , or ( a ) - Meets two or more aspects selected from the group consisting of (c).
  • R b13 to R b16 represent a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms; 50 alkynyl group, substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms heteroaryl group, -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), -O-(R 904 ), -S-(R 905 )
  • the group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 ) is as explained in the section
  • R b13 to R b16 are each independently preferably a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring-forming carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms.
  • a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 18 ring carbon atoms more preferably a hydrogen atom, an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, and an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms.
  • R b13 to R b16 may be bonded to each other to form a benzene ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
  • R b13 to R b16 When two adjacent groups in R b13 to R b16 bond to each other to form a benzene ring, R b13 to R b16 together with the benzene ring to which they are bonded form a fused ring, that is, a naphthalene ring. It turns out.
  • the substituents are as explained in the section of "Substituents described in this specification".
  • the substituent is preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, and more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms.
  • an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 20 ring carbon atoms more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, particularly preferably , methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, and 2-norbornyl group.
  • n1 is 0, 1, or 2, preferably 0 or 1, and may be 0 or 1.
  • the substituents are as explained in the section of "Substituent described herein.”
  • the substituent is preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, and more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms.
  • an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 20 ring carbon atoms more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, particularly preferably , methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, and 2-norbornyl group.
  • n2 representing the number of substitutions for R x is an integer of 1 or more, and may be 1 or an integer of 2 or more, preferably an integer of 1 to 6, more preferably 1 to 4 It is an integer, more preferably an integer from 1 to 3.
  • R x represents a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 3 to 30 carbon atoms or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms (excluding adamantyl groups).
  • R x is preferably a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 3 to 10 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 9 ring carbon atoms, and more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 3 to 9 ring carbon atoms.
  • 9 is particularly preferably an isopropyl group, a t-butyl group, a cyclopentyl group, a cyclohexyl group, a 1-norbornyl group, and a 2-norbornyl group.
  • n2 is an integer of 2 or more, the alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms or the cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms represented by R
  • R the alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms or the cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms represented by R
  • R x is preferably a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 10 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, and more preferably , an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 10 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted ring carbon atom 3 to 10 cycloalkyl groups, particularly preferably methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, 2-norbornyl group be.
  • R x is either (a) bonded to the benzene ring instead of at least one selected from R b13 to R b16 , or (b ) bonded to at least one group selected from R b13 to R b16 ; (c) bonded to at least one group selected from the group consisting of Ar 2 and Ar 3 ; or Meets two or more aspects selected from the group consisting of (a) to (c).
  • the bond may be bonded anywhere on at least one group selected from R b13 to R b16 .
  • R x when R x is bonded to R b13 , if R b13 is a substituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, even if R x is bonded to the aryl group, It means that it may be bonded to a substituent of the aryl group.
  • the above aspect (c) may be bonded anywhere on at least one group selected from the group consisting of Ar 2 and Ar 3 .
  • formula (i) examples include the following formulas (i-1) to (i-5), but are not particularly limited to these.
  • each group in the following formula is the same as the group with the same symbol in formula (i).
  • Each explanation in the above formula (i) also applies to the following formulas (i-1) to (i-5).
  • the formula (i) may be the following formula (i-1) or the following formula (i-5), or may be any of the following formulas (i-2) to (i-4). .
  • the benzene ring described as Ar 2 indicates that Ar 2 is a benzene ring.
  • the benzene ring described as Ar 2 may have a substituent, R x may be bonded to it, or R x may be bonded to the substituent possessed by the benzene ring.
  • the substituent that the benzene ring described as Ar 2 may have is the same as the "substituent in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted"" in the "substituent described in this specification" section. be.
  • the substituent is preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, more preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 18 carbon atoms, or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms. group, more preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, a cycloalkyl group having 5 to 10 ring carbon atoms, particularly preferably a methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, and 2-norbornyl group.
  • a hydrogen atom is bonded to a portion of Ar 2 that is not bonded to Ar 3 and has no substituent.
  • a hydrogen atom may be bonded to the moiety where no substituent is described, or R x may be bonded to the moiety where no substituent is described. or a substituent may be bonded. Moreover, R x may be bonded to the substituent.
  • the above-mentioned substituent is the same as "substituent in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted"" in the section of "substituent described in this specification".
  • the substituent is preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, more preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 18 carbon atoms, or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms.
  • group more preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, a cycloalkyl group having 5 to 10 ring carbon atoms, particularly preferably a methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, and 2-norbornyl group.
  • the benzene ring described as Ar 2 indicates that Ar 2 is a benzene ring.
  • the benzene ring described as Ar 2 may have a substituent, R x may be bonded to it, or R x may be bonded to the substituent possessed by the benzene ring.
  • the substituent that the benzene ring described as Ar 2 may have is the same as "substituent in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted"" in the section of "substituent described in this specification". be.
  • the substituent is preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, more preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 18 carbon atoms, or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms.
  • group more preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, a cycloalkyl group having 5 to 10 ring carbon atoms, particularly preferably a methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, and 2-norbornyl group.
  • Ar 3 is preferably a substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group.
  • X is -O-, -S-, or -N(-R 3 )- [R 3 is an alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms or an aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms. ].
  • R c1 , R c2 , R b17 to R b22 and R d1 to R d6 are each independently, Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group, Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms; A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), A group represented by -O-(R 904 ), A group
  • n3 is 0 or 1.
  • *3 indicates the bonding position with the nitrogen atom shown in formula (1).
  • *4 and *5 indicate that they are bonded to the benzene ring instead of any of R d1 to R d6 , and are bonded to different positions. However, when n3 is 0, *3 and *6 are directly connected without going through *4 and *5. *6 indicates that it is bonded to the benzene ring instead of any one of R b17 to R b19 .
  • R y1 is an alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
  • n4 is an integer of 1 or more.
  • R y1 indicates the bonding position of R y1 , and R y1 is bonded to the benzene ring instead of (d) at least one selected from R c1 , R c2 and R b17 to R b22 ; (e) It is bonded to at least one group selected from R c1 , R c2 , R 3 and R b17 to R b22 , or satisfies both aspects (d) and (e) above.
  • R c1 , R c2 , R b17 to R b22 and R d1 to R d6 represent a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms; Alkenyl group, substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, A substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms, a group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), a group represented by -O-(R 904 ), The group represented by -S-(R 905
  • R c1 , R c2 , R b17 to R b22 and R d1 to R d6 are each independently preferably a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted ring-forming group.
  • two adjacent groups in R c1 , R c2 and R b17 to R b22 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
  • n3 is 0 or 1, preferably 0.
  • the alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms and the cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms represented by R y1 are the same as the description of ⁇ substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group'' in the ⁇ substituents described in this specification'' section.
  • R y1 is preferably a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 10 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, and more preferably an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 1 to 10 ring carbon atoms.
  • n4 is an integer of 1 or more, preferably an integer of 1 to 6, more preferably an integer of 1 to 4, still more preferably an integer of 1 to 3, and may be 1 or 2. There may be one or three.
  • R y1 indicates the bonding position of R y1 , and R y1 is bonded to the benzene ring instead of (d) at least one selected from R c1 , R c2 and R b17 to R b22 ; (e) It is bonded to at least one group selected from R c1 , R c2 , R 3 and R b17 to R b22 , or satisfies both aspects (d) and (e) above.
  • the above embodiment (e) may be bonded anywhere on at least one group selected from R c1 , R c2 , R 3 and R b17 to R b22 .
  • R y1 is bonded to R b20
  • R b20 is a substituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms
  • R y1 is bonded to the aryl group
  • R b20 is a substituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms
  • R b23 to R b30 and R e1 to R e5 are each independently, Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group, Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms; A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), A group represented by -O-(R 904 ), A group represented by -S-
  • *8 indicates the bonding position with the nitrogen atom shown in formula (1). *9 indicates that the nitrogen atom shown in formula (iii) is bonded to the benzene ring instead of any one of R e1 to R e5 .
  • R y2 is a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
  • n5 is an integer of 1 or more.
  • R y2 indicates the bonding position of R y2 , and R y2 is bonded to the benzene ring instead of (f) at least one selected from R b23 to R b30 , or (g) R b23 to R b30. It is bonded to at least one group selected from R b30 , or satisfies both aspects (f) and (g) above.
  • R b23 to R b30 and R e1 to R e5 represent a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms; Substituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted ring Heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 atoms, group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), group represented by -O-(R 904 ), -S-(R 905 ) and
  • R b23 to R b30 and R e1 to R e5 are each independently preferably a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted ring-forming alkyl group having 3 to 50 carbon atoms.
  • R b23 to R b30 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
  • R b23 to R b30 form a condensed ring, that is, a naphthalene ring, together with the benzene ring to which they are bonded. become.
  • alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms and the cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms represented by R y2 are the same as the description of ⁇ substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group'' in the section ⁇ Substituents described in this specification.'' Regarding the description of "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group", reference can be made to a range of 1 to 30 carbon atoms, and reference can be made to a range of 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
  • R y2 is preferably a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 10 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, and more preferably an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 1 to 10 ring carbon atoms.
  • n5 is an integer of 1 or more, preferably an integer of 1 to 6, more preferably an integer of 1 to 4, still more preferably an integer of 1 to 3, and may be 1 or 2. There may be one or three.
  • R y2 indicates the bonding position of R y2 , and R y2 is bonded to the benzene ring instead of (f) at least one selected from R b23 to R b30 , or (g) R b23 to R b30. It is bonded to at least one group selected from R b30 , or satisfies both aspects (f) and (g) above.
  • the above embodiment (g) may be bonded anywhere on at least one group selected from R b23 to R b30 .
  • R y2 is bonded to R b23
  • R b23 is a substituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms
  • R y2 is bonded to the aryl group
  • a "hydrogen atom” may be any of a light hydrogen atom, a deuterium atom, and a tritium atom. Therefore, compound (1) may contain a naturally occurring deuterium atom. Further, deuterium atoms may be intentionally introduced into compound (1) by using a deuterated compound as part or all of the raw material compounds. That is, the compound (1) may be a compound represented by the above formula (1), in which at least one of the hydrogen atoms contained in the compound is a deuterium atom. That is, compound (1) may have one or more deuterium atoms in the molecule.
  • the deuteration rate of compound (1) depends on the deuteration rate of the raw material compound used. Even if a raw material with a predetermined deuteration rate is used, a certain proportion of naturally derived light hydrogen isotopes may be included. Therefore, the aspect of the deuteration rate of compound (1) shown below is based on the ratio calculated by simply counting the number of deuterium atoms represented by the chemical formula, taking into account trace amounts of naturally occurring isotopes. Contains ratios.
  • the deuteration rate of compound (1) is preferably 1% or more, more preferably 3% or more, even more preferably 5% or more, even more preferably 10% or more, even more preferably 50% or more.
  • Compound (1) may be a mixture containing a deuterated compound and a non-deuterated compound, or a mixture of two or more compounds having different deuteration rates.
  • the deuteration rate of such a mixture is preferably 1% or more, more preferably 3% or more, even more preferably 5% or more, even more preferably 10% or more, even more preferably 50% or more, and 100% or more. less than %.
  • the ratio of the number of deuterium atoms to the total number of hydrogen atoms in compound (1) is preferably 1% or more, more preferably 3% or more, even more preferably 5% or more, even more preferably 10% or more, and , 100% or less.
  • compound (1) is preferably a light hydrogen compound from the viewpoint of manufacturing cost.
  • the light hydrogen body is one in which the content ratio of the light hydrogen body to the total amount of compound (1) is 90 mol% or more, preferably 95 mol% or more, more preferably 99 mol% or more (each including 100%). It means that.
  • Compound (1) can be easily produced by those skilled in the art with reference to known synthesis methods and synthesis examples described below.
  • compound (1) is shown below, but are not limited to the following exemplified compounds.
  • when there is no substitution it means that a light hydrogen atom is bonded, and D is a deuterium atom.
  • D is a deuterium atom.
  • nothing is written before the bonding group, it means a methyl group following chemical conventions.
  • the organic EL element of the present invention includes an anode, a cathode, and an organic layer disposed between the anode and the cathode.
  • the organic layer includes a light-emitting layer, and at least one of the organic layers includes compound (1).
  • Examples of organic layers containing compound (1) include hole transport zones (hole injection layer, hole transport layer, electron blocking layer, exciton blocking layer, etc.) provided between the anode and the light emitting layer; At least one layer selected from a light emitting layer and an electron transport zone (electron injection layer, electron transport layer, hole blocking layer, etc.) provided between the cathode and the light emitting layer can be mentioned.
  • the organic layer preferably includes a hole transport zone between the anode and the light emitting layer, the hole transport zone preferably includes compound (1), and the hole injection layer and the hole transport zone preferably include a compound (1). It is more preferable that the hole transport layer contains the compound (1), and it is even more preferable that the hole transport layer contains the compound (1).
  • the hole transport layer may consist of two or more layers, and one of the two or more hole transport layers, preferably the hole transport layer closest to the anode (farthest from the light emitting layer), contains compound (1). May include.
  • the hole transport layer contains the compound (1) and consists of a first hole transport layer on the anode side and a second hole transport layer on the cathode side, the first hole transport layer and It is preferable that at least one of the second hole transport layers contains the compound (1), and it is more preferable that at least the first hole transport layer contains the compound (1).
  • the light emitting layer may consist of one layer, or may consist of two or more layers.
  • the electron transport layer may consist of one layer, or may consist of two or more layers.
  • the organic EL device of the present invention may be a monochromatic fluorescent or phosphorescent type light emitting device, a fluorescent/phosphorescent hybrid type white light emitting device, or a simple type having a single light emitting unit.
  • the device may be of a tandem type having a plurality of light emitting units, and is preferably a fluorescent light emitting device.
  • the "light-emitting unit” refers to a minimum unit that includes an organic layer, at least one of which is a light-emitting layer, and emits light by recombining injected holes and electrons.
  • the light-emitting unit may be a multilayer type having a plurality of phosphorescence-emitting layers or fluorescent light-emitting layers.
  • a space layer may be provided for the purpose of preventing excitons from diffusing into the fluorescent light emitting layer.
  • a typical layer structure of a simple light emitting unit is shown below. The presence or absence of layers in parentheses is optional.
  • Each of the phosphorescent or fluorescent light-emitting layers may emit light of a different color from each other.
  • Examples include a layer structure such as a layer (blue light emitting)/electron transport layer.
  • an electron blocking layer may be provided between each light emitting layer and the hole transport layer or space layer as appropriate.
  • a hole blocking layer may be provided between each light emitting layer and the electron transport layer as appropriate.
  • Typical device configurations of tandem type organic EL devices include the following device configurations.
  • the first light emitting unit and the second light emitting unit can be independently selected from the above light emitting units, for example.
  • the intermediate layer is generally also called an intermediate electrode, intermediate conductive layer, charge generation layer, electron extraction layer, connection layer, or intermediate insulating layer, and supplies electrons to the first light emitting unit and holes to the second light emitting unit. Any known material configuration can be used.
  • FIG. 1 is a schematic diagram showing an example of the configuration of an organic EL element of the present invention.
  • the organic EL element 1 includes a substrate 2, an anode 3, a cathode 4, and a light emitting unit 10 disposed between the anode 3 and the cathode 4.
  • the light emitting unit 10 has a light emitting layer 5.
  • a hole transport zone 6 (hole injection layer, hole transport layer, etc.) is formed between the light emitting layer 5 and the anode 3
  • an electron transport zone 7 electron injection layer, electron transport layer, etc.
  • an electron blocking layer (not shown) may be provided on the anode 3 side of the light emitting layer 5, and a hole blocking layer (not shown) may be provided on the cathode 4 side of the light emitting layer 5.
  • FIG. 2 is a schematic diagram showing another configuration of the organic EL element of the present invention.
  • the organic EL element 11 includes a substrate 2, an anode 3, a cathode 4, and a light emitting unit 20 disposed between the anode 3 and the cathode 4.
  • the light emitting unit 20 has a light emitting layer 5.
  • the hole transport zone disposed between the anode 3 and the light emitting layer 5 is formed of a hole injection layer 6a, a first hole transport layer 6b, and a second hole transport layer 6c.
  • the electron transport zone arranged between the light emitting layer 5 and the cathode 4 is formed from the first electron transport layer 7a and the second electron transport layer 7b.
  • FIG. 3 is a schematic diagram showing another configuration of the organic EL element of the present invention.
  • the organic EL element 12 includes a substrate 2, an anode 3, a cathode 4, and a light emitting unit 30 disposed between the anode 3 and the cathode 4.
  • the light emitting unit 30 has a first light emitting layer 5a and a second light emitting layer 5b.
  • the hole transport zone disposed between the anode 3 and the first light emitting layer 5a is formed of a hole injection layer 6a, a first hole transport layer 6b, and a second hole transport layer 6c.
  • the electron transport zone arranged between the second light emitting layer 5b and the cathode 4 is formed from the first electron transport layer 7a and the second electron transport layer 7b.
  • a host combined with a fluorescent dopant material is referred to as a fluorescent host
  • a host combined with a phosphorescent dopant material is referred to as a phosphorescent host.
  • Fluorescent hosts and phosphorescent hosts are not distinguished only by molecular structure. That is, the phosphorescent host refers to a material containing a phosphorescent dopant that forms a phosphorescent layer, and does not mean that it cannot be used as a material to form a fluorescent layer. The same applies to fluorescent hosts.
  • the substrate is used as a support for the organic EL element.
  • a plate of glass, quartz, plastic, etc. can be used.
  • a flexible substrate may be used.
  • the flexible substrate include plastic substrates made of polyimide, polycarbonate, polyarylate, polyethersulfone, polypropylene, polyester, polyvinyl fluoride, and polyvinyl chloride.
  • an inorganic vapor-deposited film can also be used.
  • Anode It is preferable to use a metal, an alloy, an electrically conductive compound, a mixture thereof, or the like having a large work function (specifically, 4.0 eV or more) for the anode formed on the substrate.
  • a metal, an alloy, an electrically conductive compound, a mixture thereof, or the like having a large work function (specifically, 4.0 eV or more) for the anode formed on the substrate.
  • ITO indium oxide-tin oxide
  • indium oxide-tin oxide containing silicon or silicon oxide indium oxide-zinc oxide
  • indium oxide containing tungsten oxide and zinc oxide examples include graphene.
  • gold Au
  • platinum Pt
  • nickel Ni
  • tungsten W
  • Cr chromium
  • Mo molybdenum
  • iron Fe
  • Co cobalt
  • Cu copper
  • palladium Pd
  • titanium Ti
  • nitrides of the above metals eg, titanium nitride
  • These materials are usually deposited using a sputtering method.
  • a sputtering method For example, for indium oxide-zinc oxide, use a target in which 1 to 10 wt% of zinc oxide is added to indium oxide, and for indium oxide containing tungsten oxide and zinc oxide, 0.5 to 5 wt% of tungsten oxide is added to indium oxide. %, and by using a target containing 0.1 to 1 wt % zinc oxide, it can be formed by a sputtering method. In addition, it may be produced by a vacuum evaporation method, a coating method, an inkjet method, a spin coating method, or the like.
  • the organic layer may include a hole transport zone between the anode and the light emitting layer.
  • the hole transport zone is composed of a hole injection layer, a hole transport layer, an electron blocking layer, and the like.
  • the hole transport zone contains the inventive compound. It is preferable that at least one of these layers constituting the hole transport layer contains the invention compound, and it is particularly preferable that the hole transport layer contains the invention compound.
  • the hole injection layer formed in contact with the anode is formed using a material that can easily inject holes regardless of the work function of the anode. , alloys, electrically conductive compounds, mixtures thereof, and elements belonging to Group 1 or Group 2 of the Periodic Table of Elements). Elements belonging to Group 1 or Group 2 of the periodic table, which are materials with a small work function, namely alkali metals such as lithium (Li) and cesium (Cs), as well as magnesium (Mg), calcium (Ca), and strontium. Alkaline earth metals such as (Sr), alloys containing these (for example, MgAg, AlLi), rare earth metals such as europium (Eu), ytterbium (Yb), alloys containing these, etc.
  • alloys, electrically conductive compounds, mixtures thereof, and elements belonging to Group 1 or Group 2 of the Periodic Table of Elements which are materials with a small work function, namely alkali metals such as lithium (Li) and cesium (Cs),
  • a vacuum evaporation method or a sputtering method can be used.
  • a coating method, an inkjet method, etc. can be used.
  • Hole injection layer is a layer containing a material with high hole injection property (hole injection material), and is located between the anode and the light emitting layer or, if present, with the hole transport layer. Formed between the anodes.
  • Hole injection layer materials other than the invention compounds include molybdenum oxide, titanium oxide, vanadium oxide, rhenium oxide, ruthenium oxide, chromium oxide, zirconium oxide, hafnium oxide, tantalum oxide, and silver oxide. oxide, tungsten oxide, manganese oxide, etc. can be used.
  • High molecular compounds oligomers, dendrimers, polymers, etc.
  • PVK poly(N-vinylcarbazole)
  • PVTPA poly(4-vinyltriphenylamine)
  • PTPDMA poly[N-(4- ⁇ N'-[4-(4-diphenylamino) phenyl]phenyl-N'-phenylamino ⁇ phenyl) methacrylamide]
  • PTPDMA poly[N,N'-bis(4-butylphenyl)-N,N'-bis(phenyl)benzidine]
  • Polymer compounds such as Poly-TPD
  • a polymer compound to which an acid is added such as poly(3,4-ethylenedioxythiophene)/poly(styrene sulfonic acid) (PEDOT/PSS) or polyaniline/poly(styrene sulfonic acid) (PAni/PSS), is used. You can also do that.
  • acceptor material such as a hexaazatriphenylene (HAT) compound represented by the following formula (K).
  • HAT hexaazatriphenylene
  • R 221 to R 226 are each independently a cyano group, -CONH 2 , a carboxyl group, or -COOR 227 (R 227 is an alkyl group having 1 to 20 carbon atoms or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 20 carbon atoms)
  • R 227 is an alkyl group having 1 to 20 carbon atoms or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 20 carbon atoms
  • two adjacent groups selected from R 221 and R 222 , R 223 and R 224 , and R 225 and R 226 bond to each other to form a group represented by -CO-O-CO-.
  • R 227 examples include methyl group, ethyl group, n-propyl group, isopropyl group, n-butyl group, isobutyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, and cyclohexyl group.
  • the hole transport layer is a layer containing a material with high hole transport properties (hole transport material), and is located between the anode and the light emitting layer or, if present, between the hole injection layer and the hole transport layer. It is formed between the light emitting layers.
  • Compound (1) may be used alone or in combination with the following compounds in the hole transport layer.
  • the hole transport layer may have a single layer structure or a multilayer structure including two or more layers.
  • the hole transport layer may have a two-layer structure including a first hole transport layer (on the anode side) and a second hole transport layer (on the cathode side). That is, the hole transport zone may include a first hole transport layer on the anode side and a second hole transport layer on the cathode side.
  • the hole transport layer may have a three-layer structure including, in order from the anode side, a first hole transport layer, a second hole transport layer, and a third hole transport layer. That is, the third hole transport layer may be arranged between the second hole transport layer and the light emitting layer.
  • the single-layer structure hole transport layer is preferably adjacent to the light emitting layer, and the hole transport layer closest to the cathode in the multilayer structure is, for example, the two-layer structure
  • the second hole transport layer and the third hole transport layer of the three-layer structure are preferably adjacent to the light emitting layer.
  • the below-mentioned electron A blocking layer or the like may be interposed.
  • at least one of the first hole transport layer and the second hole transport layer contains the inventive compound.
  • the inventive compound may be contained in one of the first hole transport layer and the second hole transport layer, or may be contained in both. good.
  • the inventive compound may be contained in only one of the first to third hole transport layers, or may be contained in only any two. It may be included in all items, or it may be included in all items.
  • the inventive compound is preferably contained in the second hole transport layer, and specifically, the inventive compound is contained only in the second hole transport layer, or the inventive compound is contained in the first hole transport layer. It is preferably included in the hole transport layer and the second hole transport layer.
  • aromatic amine compounds examples include 4,4'-bis[N-(1-naphthyl)-N-phenylamino]biphenyl (abbreviation: NPB) and N,N'-bis(3-methylphenyl)-N , N'-diphenyl-[1,1'-biphenyl]-4,4'-diamine (abbreviation: TPD), 4-phenyl-4'-(9-phenylfluoren-9-yl)triphenylamine (abbreviation: BAFLP), 4,4'-bis[N-(9,9-dimethylfluoren-2-yl)-N-phenylamino]biphenyl (abbreviation: DFLDPBi), 4,4',4''-tris(N,N -diphenylamino)tri
  • carbazole derivatives examples include 4,4'-di(9-carbazolyl)biphenyl (abbreviation: CBP), 9-[4-(9-carbazolyl)phenyl]-10-phenylanthracene (abbreviation: CzPA), and Examples include 9-phenyl-3-[4-(10-phenyl-9-anthryl)phenyl]-9H-carbazole (abbreviation: PCzPA).
  • anthracene derivatives examples include 2-t-butyl-9,10-di(2-naphthyl)anthracene (abbreviation: t-BuDNA), 9,10-di(2-naphthyl)anthracene (abbreviation: DNA), and , 9,10-diphenylanthracene (abbreviation: DPAnth).
  • Polymer compounds such as poly(N-vinylcarbazole) (abbreviation: PVK) and poly(4-vinyltriphenylamine) (abbreviation: PVTPA) can also be used.
  • PVK poly(N-vinylcarbazole)
  • PVTPA poly(4-vinyltriphenylamine)
  • compounds other than those mentioned above may be used as long as they have higher hole transport properties than electron transport properties.
  • the first hole transport layer contains a compound represented by the following formula (11) or formula (12).
  • L A1 , L B1 , L C1 , L A2 , L B2 , L C2 and L D2 are each independently a single bond, a substituted or unsubstituted arylene group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted arylene group is a divalent heterocyclic group having 5 to 50 ring atoms, k is 1, 2, 3 or 4, When k is 1, L E2 is a substituted or unsubstituted arylene group having 6 to 50 ring atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted divalent heterocyclic group having 5 to 50 ring atoms; When k is 2, 3 or 4, 2, 3 or 4 L E2 are the same or different, When k is 2, 3 or 4, the plurality of L E2 's are bonded to each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted monocycle, bonded to each other to form a substituted or
  • a 1 , B 1 , C 1 , A 2 , B 2 , C 2 and D 2 are each independently a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring-forming carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted ring-forming aryl group
  • R' 901 , R' 902 and R' 903 are each independently a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms
  • first hole transport layer may contain one type of compound represented by formula (11) and formula (12), or may contain one type of compound represented by formula (11) and formula (12). It may contain multiple types of.
  • A1, B1, C1, A2, B2, C2, and D2 are preferably each independently a substituted or unsubstituted phenylene group, a substituted or unsubstituted biphenyl group, Substituted or unsubstituted terphenyl group, substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group, substituted or unsubstituted fluorenyl group, substituted or unsubstituted dibensofuranyl group, substituted or unsubstituted dibenzothiophenyl group, and substituted or unsubstituted dibenzothiophenyl group. selected from carbazolyl groups.
  • At least one of A1, B1, and C1, and in formula (12), at least one of A2, B2, C2, and D2 is substituted or unsubstituted biphenyl. group, substituted or unsubstituted terphenyl group, substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group, substituted or unsubstituted fluorenyl group, substituted or unsubstituted dibensofuranyl group, or substituted or unsubstituted dibenzothiophenyl group, substituted or unsubstituted It is a substituted carbazolyl group.
  • the fluorenyl groups that A1, B1, C1, A2, B2, C2, and D2 can have may have a substituent at the 9-position, for example, 9,9-dimethylfluorenyl group, 9,9- It may also be a diphenylfluorenyl group. Further, the substituents at the 9-position may form a ring, for example, the substituents at the 9-position may form a fluorene skeleton or a xanthene skeleton.
  • L A1 , L B1 , L C1 , L A2 , L B2 , L C2 and L D2 are preferably each independently a single bond or a substituted or unsubstituted arylene group having 6 to 12 ring carbon atoms.
  • the light emitting layer is a layer containing a highly luminescent material (dopant material), and various materials can be used.
  • a fluorescent material or a phosphorescent material can be used as a dopant material.
  • Fluorescent materials are compounds that emit light from a singlet excited state
  • phosphorescent materials are compounds that emit light from a triplet excited state.
  • the emissive layer is a single layer.
  • the light emitting layer includes a first light emitting layer on the anode side and a second light emitting layer on the cathode side.
  • Pyrene derivatives, styrylamine derivatives, chrysene derivatives, fluoranthene derivatives, fluorene derivatives, diamine derivatives, triarylamine derivatives, etc. can be used as blue fluorescent materials that can be used in the light-emitting layer.
  • N,N'-bis[4-(9H-carbazol-9-yl)phenyl]-N,N'-diphenylstilbene-4,4'-diamine (abbreviation: YGA2S), 4-(9H -carbazol-9-yl)-4'-(10-phenyl-9-anthryl)triphenylamine (abbreviation: YGAPA), 4-(10-phenyl-9-anthryl)-4'-(9-phenyl-9H -carbazol-3-yl)triphenylamine (abbreviation: PCBAPA).
  • Aromatic amine derivatives and the like can be used as green fluorescent materials that can be used in the light emitting layer.
  • 2PCAPA N-(9,10-diphenyl-2-anthryl)-N,9-diphenyl-9H-carbazol-3-amine
  • 2PCABPhA N-[9,10-bis(1,1 '-biphenyl-2-yl)-2-anthryl]-N,9-diphenyl-9H-carbazol-3-amine
  • 2DPAPA N-(9,10-diphenyl-2-anthryl)-N,N ',N'-triphenyl-1,4-phenylenediamine
  • 2DPAPA N-[9,10-bis(1,1'-biphenyl-2-yl)-2-anthryl]-N,N' , N'-triphenyl-1,4-phenylenediamine
  • 2DPABPhA N-[9,10-bis(1,1'-biphenyl-2
  • Tetracene derivatives, diamine derivatives, etc. can be used as red fluorescent materials that can be used in the light emitting layer.
  • N,N,N',N'-tetrakis(4-methylphenyl)tetracene-5,11-diamine abbreviation: p-mPhTD
  • 7,14-diphenyl-N,N,N' examples include N'-tetrakis(4-methylphenyl)acenaphtho[1,2-a]fluoranthene-3,10-diamine (abbreviation: p-mPhAFD).
  • the light-emitting layer contains a fluorescent material (fluorescent dopant material).
  • Metal complexes such as iridium complexes, osmium complexes, and platinum complexes are used as blue-based phosphorescent materials that can be used in the light-emitting layer.
  • An iridium complex or the like is used as a green phosphorescent material that can be used in the light emitting layer.
  • Tris(2-phenylpyridinato-N,C2')iridium(III) (abbreviation: Ir(ppy)3), bis(2-phenylpyridinato-N,C2')iridium(III) acetylacetonate ( Abbreviation: Ir(ppy)2(acac)), bis(1,2-diphenyl-1H-benzimidazolato)iridium(III) acetylacetonate (abbreviation: Ir(pbi)2(acac)), bis(benzo[ h] quinolinato) iridium (III) acetylacetonate (abbreviation: Ir(bzz)2(acac)), and the like.
  • Metal complexes such as iridium complexes, platinum complexes, terbium complexes, and europium complexes are used as red-colored phosphorescent materials that can be used in the light-emitting layer.
  • bis[2-(2′-benzo[4,5- ⁇ ]thienyl)pyridinato-N,C3′]iridium(III) acetylacetonate abbreviation: Ir(btp)2(acac)
  • Bis(1-phenylisoquinolinato-N,C2')iridium(III) acetylacetonate abbreviation: Ir(piq)2(acac)
  • (acetylacetonato)bis[2,3-bis(4-fluoro) phenyl)quinoxalinato]iridium(III) abbreviation: Ir(Fdpq)2(acac)
  • tris(acetylacetonato)(monophenanthroline)terbium(III) (abbreviation: Tb(acac)3(Phen)
  • tris(1,3-diphenyl-1,3-propanedionato)(monophenanthroline) europium (III) (abbreviation: Eu(DBM)3(Phen)
  • tris[1-(2-thenoyl)-3,3,3-trifluoroacetonato](monophenanthroline) europium(III) (abbreviation: Eu( Rare earth metal complexes such as TTA)3(Phen) can be used as phosphorescent materials because they emit light from rare earth metal ions (electronic transition between different multiplicities).
  • the light emitting layer may have a structure in which the above-mentioned dopant material is dispersed in another material (host material). It is preferable to use a material that has a higher lowest unoccupied orbital level (LUMO level) and a lower highest occupied orbital level (HOMO level) than the dopant material.
  • LUMO level lowest unoccupied orbital level
  • HOMO level lowest occupied orbital level
  • host materials include (1) metal complexes such as aluminum complexes, beryllium complexes, or zinc complexes; (2) Heterocyclic compounds such as oxadiazole derivatives, benzimidazole derivatives, or phenanthroline derivatives, (3) fused aromatic compounds such as carbazole derivatives, anthracene derivatives, phenanthrene derivatives, pyrene derivatives, or chrysene derivatives, (4) Aromatic amine compounds such as triarylamine derivatives or fused polycyclic aromatic amine derivatives are used.
  • tris(8-quinolinolato)aluminum(III) (abbreviation: Alq)
  • tris(4-methyl-8-quinolinolato)aluminum(III) (abbreviation: Almq3)
  • bis(10-hydroxybenzo[h]quinolinato)beryllium (II) (abbreviation: BeBq2)
  • bis(2-methyl-8-quinolinolato)(4-phenylphenolato)aluminum(III) abbreviation: BAlq
  • bis(8-quinolinolato)zinc(II) (abbreviation: Znq)
  • bis[2-(2-benzoxazolyl)phenolato]zinc(II) (abbreviation: ZnPBO), bis[2-(2-benzothiazolyl)phenolato]zinc(II) (abbreviation: ZnBTZ), etc.
  • anthracene compound in the case of a blue fluorescent element, it is preferable to use the following anthracene compound as a host material.
  • the organic EL element when the light-emitting layer includes a first light-emitting layer and a second light-emitting layer, at least one of the components constituting the first light-emitting layer contains the second light-emitting layer. It is different from the constituent components.
  • the dopant material contained in the first light emitting layer may be different from the dopant material contained in the second light emitting layer, or the host material contained in the first light emitting layer may be different from the host material contained in the second light emitting layer. Different aspects are mentioned.
  • the light-emitting layer may contain a light-emitting compound (hereinafter sometimes simply referred to as a "fluorescent compound”) that exhibits fluorescent light emission with a main peak wavelength of 500 nm or less.
  • a light-emitting compound hereinafter sometimes simply referred to as a "fluorescent compound” that exhibits fluorescent light emission with a main peak wavelength of 500 nm or less.
  • the method for measuring the main peak wavelength is as follows. A 5 ⁇ mol/L toluene solution of the compound to be measured is prepared and placed in a quartz cell, and the emission spectrum (vertical axis: emission intensity, horizontal axis: wavelength) of this sample is measured at room temperature (300K).
  • the emission spectrum can be measured using a spectrofluorometer (device name: F-7000) manufactured by Hitachi High-Tech Science Co., Ltd. Note that the emission spectrum measuring device is not limited to the device used here.
  • the peak wavelength of the emission spectrum at which the emission intensity is maximum is defined as the main peak wavelength.
  • the main peak wavelength may be referred to as fluorescence main peak wavelength (FL-peak).
  • the fluorescent compound may be the dopant material or the host material.
  • the light-emitting layer is a single layer, only one of the dopant material and the host material may be the fluorescent compound, or both may be the fluorescent compound.
  • the light emitting layer includes a first light emitting layer (anode side) and a second light emitting layer (cathode side)
  • only one of the first light emitting layer and the second light emitting layer contains the fluorescent compound.
  • both of the light-emitting layers may contain the fluorescent compound.
  • the first light-emitting layer contains the fluorescent compound
  • only one of the dopant material and the host material contained in the first light-emitting layer may be the fluorescent compound, or both may be the fluorescent compound.
  • the second light emitting layer contains the fluorescent compound
  • only one of the dopant material and the host material contained in the second light emitting layer may be the fluorescent compound, or both may be the fluorescent compound. It may be a sexual compound.
  • Electron transport layer is a layer containing a material with high electron transport properties (electron transport material), and is formed between the light emitting layer and the cathode or, if present, between the electron injection layer and the light emitting layer. Ru.
  • the electron transport layer may have a single layer structure or a multilayer structure including two or more layers.
  • the electron transport layer may have a two-layer structure including a first electron transport layer (on the anode side) and a second electron transport layer (on the cathode side).
  • the electron transport layer of the single layer structure is preferably adjacent to the light emitting layer, and the electron transport layer of the multilayer structure closest to the anode, for example, the electron transport layer of the two layer structure is adjacent to the light emitting layer.
  • the electron transport layer of the two layer structure is adjacent to the light emitting layer.
  • one electron transport layer is adjacent to the light emitting layer.
  • the hole blocking described below is provided between the electron transport layer and the light emitting layer of the single layer structure, or between the electron transport layer and the light emitting layer closest to the light emitting layer in the multilayer structure. A layer or the like may be interposed.
  • the electron transport layer includes, for example, (1) Metal complexes such as aluminum complexes, beryllium complexes, zinc complexes, (2) Heteroaromatic compounds such as imidazole derivatives, benzimidazole derivatives, azine derivatives, carbazole derivatives, phenanthroline derivatives, (3) High molecular compounds can be used.
  • Metal complexes such as aluminum complexes, beryllium complexes, zinc complexes
  • Heteroaromatic compounds such as imidazole derivatives, benzimidazole derivatives, azine derivatives, carbazole derivatives, phenanthroline derivatives
  • High molecular compounds can be used.
  • metal complexes examples include tris(8-quinolinolato)aluminum(III) (abbreviation: Alq), tris(4-methyl-8-quinolinolato)aluminum (abbreviation: Almq3), bis(10-hydroxybenzo[h]quinolinato).
  • Beryllium (abbreviation: BeBq 2 ), bis(2-methyl-8-quinolinolato)(4-phenylphenolato)aluminum(III) (abbreviation: BAlq), bis(8-quinolinolato)zinc(II) (abbreviation: Znq) ), bis[2-(2-benzoxazolyl)phenolato]zinc(II) (abbreviation: ZnPBO), and bis[2-(2-benzothiazolyl)phenolato]zinc(II) (abbreviation: ZnBTZ).
  • BeBq 2 Beryllium (abbreviation: BeBq 2 ), bis(2-methyl-8-quinolinolato)(4-phenylphenolato)aluminum(III) (abbreviation: BAlq), bis(8-quinolinolato)zinc(II) (abbreviation: Znq) ), bis[2-(2-benzoxazolyl
  • heteroaromatic compound examples include 2-(4-biphenylyl)-5-(4-tert-butylphenyl)-1,3,4-oxadiazole (abbreviation: PBD), 1,3-bis[5 -(ptert-butylphenyl)-1,3,4-oxadiazol-2-yl]benzene (abbreviation: OXD-7), 3-(4-tert-butylphenyl)-4-phenyl-5-(4 -biphenylyl)-1,2,4-triazole (abbreviation: TAZ), 3-(4-tert-butylphenyl)-4-(4-ethylphenyl)-5-(4-biphenylyl)-1,2,4 - Triazole (abbreviation: p-EtTAZ), bathophenanthroline (abbreviation: BPhen), bathocuproine (abbreviation: BCP), and 4,4'-bis(5-methylbenzo
  • polymer compounds include poly[(9,9-dihexylfluorene-2,7-diyl)-co-(pyridine-3,5-diyl)] (abbreviation: PF-Py), poly[(9, 9-dioctylfluorene-2,7-diyl)-co-(2,2'-bipyridine-6,6'-diyl)] (abbreviation: PF-BPy).
  • the above material has an electron mobility of 10 ⁇ 6 cm 2 /Vs or more. Note that materials other than those mentioned above may be used for the electron transport layer as long as they have higher electron transport properties than hole transport properties.
  • the electron injection layer is a layer containing a material with high electron injection properties.
  • the electron injection layer contains alkali metals such as lithium (Li) and cesium (Cs), alkaline earth metals such as magnesium (Mg), calcium (Ca), and strontium (Sr), europium (Eu), and ytterbium (Yb).
  • alkali metals such as lithium (Li) and cesium (Cs)
  • alkaline earth metals such as magnesium (Mg), calcium (Ca), and strontium (Sr), europium (Eu), and ytterbium (Yb).
  • Rare earth metals such as these and compounds containing these metals can be used. Examples of such compounds include alkali metal oxides, alkali metal halides, alkali metal-containing organic complexes, alkaline earth metal oxides, alkaline earth metal halides, alkaline earth metal-containing organic complexes, and rare earth metal oxides.
  • Examples include rare earth metal halides, and rare earth metal-containing organic complexes. Moreover, a plurality of these compounds can also be used in combination.
  • a material having an electron transport property containing an alkali metal, an alkaline earth metal, or a compound thereof, specifically a material containing magnesium (Mg) in Alq may be used. Note that in this case, electron injection from the cathode can be performed more efficiently.
  • a composite material made of a mixture of an organic compound and an electron donor may be used for the electron injection layer. Such a composite material has excellent electron injection and electron transport properties because the organic compound receives electrons from an electron donor.
  • the organic compound is preferably a material that is excellent in transporting received electrons, and specifically, for example, the above-mentioned materials constituting the electron transport layer (metal complexes, heteroaromatic compounds, etc.) are used. be able to.
  • the electron donor may be any material as long as it exhibits electron donating properties to organic compounds.
  • alkali metals, alkaline earth metals, and rare earth metals are preferred, and examples include lithium, cesium, magnesium, calcium, erbium, and ytterbium.
  • alkali metal oxides and alkaline earth metal oxides are preferable, and examples thereof include lithium oxide, calcium oxide, barium oxide, and the like.
  • Lewis bases such as magnesium oxide can also be used.
  • organic compounds such as tetrathiafulvalene (abbreviation: TTF) can also be used.
  • Cathode It is preferable to use a metal, an alloy, an electrically conductive compound, a mixture thereof, or the like having a small work function (specifically, 3.8 eV or less) for the cathode.
  • cathode materials include elements belonging to Group 1 or 2 of the periodic table of elements, such as alkali metals such as lithium (Li) and cesium (Cs), and magnesium (Mg) and calcium (Ca). ), alkaline earth metals such as strontium (Sr), alloys containing these (for example, MgAg, AlLi), rare earth metals such as europium (Eu), ytterbium (Yb), and alloys containing these.
  • the cathode when forming a cathode using an alkali metal, an alkaline earth metal, or an alloy containing these, a vacuum evaporation method or a sputtering method can be used. Furthermore, when using silver paste or the like, a coating method, an inkjet method, etc. can be used. By providing an electron injection layer, the cathode can be formed using various conductive materials such as Al, Ag, ITO, graphene, silicon, or indium oxide-tin oxide containing silicon oxide, regardless of the size of the work function. can do. These conductive materials can be formed into films using a sputtering method, an inkjet method, a spin coating method, or the like.
  • an insulating layer made of an insulating thin film layer may be inserted between the pair of electrodes.
  • materials used for the insulating layer include aluminum oxide, lithium fluoride, lithium oxide, cesium fluoride, cesium oxide, magnesium oxide, magnesium fluoride, calcium oxide, calcium fluoride, aluminum nitride, titanium oxide, and silicon oxide. , germanium oxide, silicon nitride, boron nitride, molybdenum oxide, ruthenium oxide, vanadium oxide, and the like. Note that a mixture or a laminate of these may also be used.
  • the above-mentioned space layer is, for example, for the purpose of preventing excitons generated in the phosphorescent layer from diffusing into the fluorescent layer or adjusting carrier balance when a fluorescent layer and a phosphorescent layer are stacked.
  • This is a layer provided between a fluorescent layer and a phosphorescent layer.
  • a space layer can also be provided between a plurality of phosphorescence-emitting layers. Since the space layer is provided between the light-emitting layers, it is preferably made of a material that has both electron-transporting properties and hole-transporting properties. Further, in order to prevent triplet energy from diffusing in adjacent phosphorescent emitting layers, it is preferable that the triplet energy is 2.6 eV or more. Examples of the material used for the space layer include the same materials as those used for the hole transport layer described above.
  • a blocking layer such as an electron blocking layer, a hole blocking layer, an exciton blocking layer, etc. may be provided adjacent to the light emitting layer.
  • the electron blocking layer is a layer that prevents electrons from leaking from the light emitting layer to the hole transport layer
  • the hole blocking layer is a layer that prevents holes from leaking from the light emitting layer to the electron transport layer.
  • the exciton blocking layer has the function of preventing excitons generated in the light emitting layer from diffusing into surrounding layers and confining the excitons within the light emitting layer.
  • Each layer of the organic EL element can be formed by a conventionally known vapor deposition method, coating method, or the like.
  • vapor deposition methods such as vacuum evaporation method and molecular beam evaporation method (MBE method), or dipping method, spin coating method, casting method, bar coating method, roll coating method, etc. using a solution of a compound forming a layer. It can be formed by a known coating method.
  • the film thickness of each layer is not particularly limited, but in general, if the film thickness is too thin, defects such as pinholes are likely to occur, and on the other hand, if the film thickness is too thick, a high driving voltage will be required and efficiency will deteriorate, so it is usually 5 nm to 10 ⁇ m. More preferably 10 nm to 0.2 ⁇ m.
  • the total thickness of the first hole transport layer (anode side) and the second hole transport layer (cathode side) is: Preferably it is 30 nm or more and 150 nm or less, more preferably 40 nm or more and 130 nm or less.
  • the thickness of the second hole transport layer is preferably 5 nm or more, more preferably 20 nm or more. More preferably it is 25 nm or more, particularly preferably 30 nm or more, most preferably 35 nm or more, and preferably 100 nm or less.
  • the hole transport layer adjacent to the light emitting layer preferably has a thickness of 5 nm or more, more preferably 20 nm or more. More preferably it is 25 nm or more, particularly preferably 30 nm or more, most preferably 35 nm or more, and preferably 100 nm or less.
  • the thickness D1 of the first hole transport layer and the thickness D2 of the second hole transport layer are 0.3 ⁇ D2/ It is preferable to satisfy the relationship D1 ⁇ 4.0. More preferably, the relationship 0.5 ⁇ D2/D1 ⁇ 3.5 is satisfied, and even more preferably the relationship 0.75 ⁇ D2/D1 ⁇ 3.0 is satisfied.
  • the D2/D1 may satisfy the relationship 0.05 ⁇ D2/D1 ⁇ 0.5, although it is not particularly limited. , 0.05 ⁇ D2/D1 ⁇ 0.3, or 0.08 ⁇ D2/D1 ⁇ 0.25.
  • Examples of embodiments of the organic EL device of the present invention include: An organic EL device having the above two-layer hole transport layer, - A first embodiment in which the second hole transport layer contains the compound (1) of the present invention and the first hole transport layer does not contain the compound (1) of the present invention; - A second embodiment in which both the first hole transport layer and the second hole transport layer contain the compound (1) of the present invention; - A third embodiment in which the first hole transport layer contains the compound of the present invention and the second hole transport layer does not contain the compound (1) of the present invention; An organic EL device having a hole transport layer having the above three-layer structure, - A fourth embodiment in which the first hole transport layer contains the compound (1) of the present invention and the second and third hole transport layers do not contain the compound (1) of the present invention; - A fifth embodiment in which the second hole transport layer contains the compound (1) of the present invention, and the first and third hole transport layers do not contain the compound (1) of the present invention; - A sixth embodiment in which the third hole transport layer contains the compound (1) of the present invention, and the first
  • the organic EL element can be used in electronic equipment such as display parts such as organic EL panel modules, display devices such as televisions, mobile phones, and personal computers, and light emitting devices for lighting and vehicle lamps.
  • Comparative compounds used for manufacturing organic EL devices of comparative examples are shown below.
  • Example 1 A glass substrate (manufactured by Geomatec Co., Ltd.) with a 25 mm x 75 mm x 1.1 mm ITO transparent electrode (anode) was ultrasonically cleaned in isopropyl alcohol for 5 minutes and then UV ozone cleaned for 30 minutes. The ITO film thickness was 130 nm. The cleaned glass substrate with a transparent electrode is mounted on a substrate holder of a vacuum evaporation apparatus, and first, compound HT-1 and compound HA are coated on the surface on which the transparent electrode is formed so as to cover the transparent electrode. A hole injection layer having a thickness of 10 nm was formed by vapor deposition.
  • HT-1:HA mass ratio of compound HT-1 and compound HA
  • Compound 1 was vapor-deposited as Compound HT-1 on the hole injection layer to form a first hole transport layer with a thickness of 80 nm.
  • compound HT-2 was deposited on the first hole transport layer to form a second hole transport layer with a thickness of 10 nm.
  • compound BH-1 (host material) and compound BD-1 (dopant material) were co-evaporated onto this second hole transport layer to form a light emitting layer with a thickness of 25 nm.
  • the mass ratio of compound BH-1 and compound BD-1 (BH-1:BD-1) was 96:4.
  • compound ET-1 was deposited to form a first electron transport layer with a thickness of 5 nm.
  • compound ET-2 and Liq were co-evaporated to form a second electron transport layer having a thickness of 20 nm.
  • the mass ratio of compound ET-2 and Liq (ET-2:Liq) was 50:50.
  • LiF was evaporated to form an electron injection layer with a thickness of 1 nm.
  • metal Al was deposited on this electron injection layer to form a metal cathode having a thickness of 50 nm.
  • the layer structure of the organic EL device of Example 1 thus obtained is shown below.
  • Examples 2 to 5 An organic EL device was produced in the same manner as in Example 1, except that one of compounds 2 to 5 was used instead of compound 1 as compound HT-1, and the external quantum efficiency (EQE) was evaluated. Ta. The results are shown in Table 1.
  • Comparative examples 1 to 4 An organic EL device was prepared in the same manner as in Example 1, except that one of Comparative Compounds 1 to 4 was used instead of Compound 1 as Compound HT-1, and the external quantum efficiency (EQE) was evaluated. went. The results are shown in Table 1.
  • Synthesis example 1 Synthesis of compound 1 Under argon atmosphere, N-(9,9-dimethyl-9H-fluoren-2-yl)-9,9-dimethyl-9H-fluoren-2-amine 4.02 g (10.0 mmol), 4-bromo-6- (t-butyl)dibenzo[b,d]furan 3.03g (10.0mmol), tris(dibenzylideneacetone)dipalladium(0) 0.183g (0.20mmol), tri-tert-butylphosphonium tetrafluoroborate A mixture of 0.232 g (0.80 mmol) of Lato, 1.35 g (14.0 mmol) of sodium-t-butoxide, and 100 mL of xylene was stirred at 110° C.
  • Synthesis example 6 Synthesis of compound 6 Under argon atmosphere, 4.02 g (10.0 mmol) of N-(9,9-dimethyl-9H-fluoren-2-yl)-9,9-dimethyl-9H-fluoren-2-amine, 3,6-di- tert-butyl-9-(3-chlorophenyl)-9H-carbazole 3.90 g (10.0 mmol), tris(dibenzylideneacetone)dipalladium(0) 0.183 g (0.20 mmol), tri-tert-butylphosphonium A mixture of 0.232 g (0.80 mmol) of tetrafluoroborate, 1.35 g (14.0 mmol) of sodium-t-butoxide, and 100 mL of xylene was stirred at 110° C.

Landscapes

  • Chemical & Material Sciences (AREA)
  • Organic Chemistry (AREA)
  • Physics & Mathematics (AREA)
  • Engineering & Computer Science (AREA)
  • Materials Engineering (AREA)
  • Spectroscopy & Molecular Physics (AREA)
  • Optics & Photonics (AREA)
  • Electroluminescent Light Sources (AREA)

Abstract

Provided are an organic electroluminescent element having further improved element performance and an electronic appliance including such organic electroluminescent element. Specifically, provided are a compound represented by formula (1), an organic electroluminescent element including said compound, and an electronic appliance including such organic electroluminescent element. (The symbols in the formula are as defined in the specification.)

Description

有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子及び電子機器Organic electroluminescent devices and electronic equipment

 本発明は、有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子及び該有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子を含む電子機器に関する。 The present invention relates to an organic electroluminescent device and an electronic device including the organic electroluminescent device.

 一般に有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子(以下、“有機EL素子”と記載することもある)は陽極、陰極、及び陽極と陰極に挟まれた有機層から構成されている。両電極間に電圧が印加されると、陰極側から電子、陽極側から正孔が発光領域に注入され、注入された電子と正孔は発光領域において再結合して励起状態を生成し、励起状態が基底状態に戻る際に光を放出する。従って、電子又は正孔を発光領域に効率よく輸送し、電子と正孔との再結合を容易にする化合物及び素子構造の開発は高性能有機EL素子を得る上で重要である。 In general, an organic electroluminescent device (hereinafter sometimes referred to as an "organic EL device") is composed of an anode, a cathode, and an organic layer sandwiched between the anode and the cathode. When a voltage is applied between the two electrodes, electrons are injected from the cathode side and holes from the anode side into the light emitting region, and the injected electrons and holes recombine in the light emitting region to generate an excited state. Light is emitted when the state returns to the ground state. Therefore, the development of compounds and device structures that efficiently transport electrons or holes to a light-emitting region and facilitate recombination of electrons and holes is important in obtaining high-performance organic EL devices.

 特許文献1~7には、有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子用材料として使用する化合物が開示されている。 Patent Documents 1 to 7 disclose compounds used as materials for organic electroluminescent devices.

KR10-2374470B1KR10-2374470B1 WO2021/134820A1WO2021/134820A1 WO2015/014435A1WO2015/014435A1 KR2021-0120526AKR2021-0120526A KR2021-0096954AKR2021-0096954A CN110577510ACN110577510A CN105906547ACN105906547A

 従来、多くの有機EL素子用の化合物及び素子構造が報告されているが、有機EL素子の性能をさらに向上させる素子構造が依然として求められている。 Although many compounds and device structures for organic EL devices have been reported in the past, there is still a need for device structures that further improve the performance of organic EL devices.

 本発明は、前記の課題を解決するためになされたもので、素子性能がより改善された有機EL素子、そのような有機EL素子を含む電子機器を提供することを目的とする。 The present invention was made to solve the above-mentioned problems, and aims to provide an organic EL device with improved device performance and an electronic device including such an organic EL device.

 本発明者らは、特許文献1~7に記載の化合物を含む有機EL素子の性能について鋭意研究を重ねた結果、下記式(1)で表される化合物を含む有機EL素子が、より一層改善された性能を有することを見出した。 As a result of extensive research into the performance of organic EL devices containing the compounds described in Patent Documents 1 to 7, the present inventors have found that organic EL devices containing the compound represented by the following formula (1) have been further improved. It was found that the material has the following performance.

 一態様において、本発明は下記式(1)で表される化合物[以下、化合物(1)と称することがある]を提供する。

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000020

[式(1)中、
 Ra1~Ra4は、それぞれ独立に、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~30のアルキル基、又は置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基であって、Ra1とRa2、及びRa3とRa4は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
 R、R、及びRb1~Rb12は、それぞれ独立に、
水素原子、ハロゲン原子、ニトロ基、シアノ基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、
-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、
-O-(R904)で表される基、
-S-(R905)で表される基、又は
-N(R906)(R907)で表される基;
 前記R901~R907は、それぞれ独立して、
水素原子、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、又は
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基;
であって、Rb1~Rb12中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
 Arは、下記式(i)~(iii)のいずれかで表される基である。]
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000021

[式(i)中、
 Rb13~Rb16は、それぞれ独立に、
水素原子、ハロゲン原子、ニトロ基、シアノ基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、
-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、
-O-(R904)で表される基、
-S-(R905)で表される基、又は
-N(R906)(R907)で表される基;
 前記R901~R907は、それぞれ独立して、
水素原子、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、又は
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基;
であって、Rb13~Rb16中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合してベンゼン環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
 Arは、置換もしくは無置換のフェニレン基、又は置換もしくは無置換のナフチレン基である。
 Arは、前記Rb13~Rb16中の隣接する2つの基が互いに結合していない場合には、置換もしくは無置換のフェニル基、又は置換もしくは無置換のナフチル基であり、前記Rb13~Rb16中の隣接する2つの基が互いに結合してベンゼン環を形成している場合には、水素原子、置換もしくは無置換のフェニル基、又は置換もしくは無置換のナフチル基である。
 n1は、0、1、又は2である。
 *1は、式(1)中に示されている窒素原子との結合位置を示す。
 n2は、1以上の整数である。
 Rは、n2が1の場合、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数3~30のアルキル基、又は置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基(但し、アダマンチル基を除く。)であって、n2が2以上の整数の場合、炭素数1~30のアルキル基、又は環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基である。
 *2は、Rの結合位置を示しており、Rは、(a)Rb13~Rb16から選択される少なくとも1種の代わりにベンゼン環に結合しているか、(b)Rb13~Rb16から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合しているか、(c)Ar及びArからなる群から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合しているか、又は、前記(a)~(c)からなる群から選択される2種以上の態様を満たす。]
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000022

[式(ii)中、
 Xは、-O-、-S-、又は-N(-R)-〔Rは、炭素数1~50のアルキル基、又は環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基である。〕である。
 Rc1、Rc2、Rb17~Rb22及びRd1~Rd6は、それぞれ独立に、
水素原子、ハロゲン原子、ニトロ基、シアノ基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、
-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、
-O-(R904)で表される基、
-S-(R905)で表される基、又は
-N(R906)(R907)で表される基;
 前記R901~R907は、それぞれ独立して、
水素原子、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、又は
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基;
であって、Rc1、Rc2及びRb17~Rb22中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
 n3は、0又は1である。
 *3は、式(1)中に示されている窒素原子との結合位置を示す。
 *4及び*5は、Rd1~Rd6のいずれかの代わりにベンゼン環に結合していることを示しており、それぞれ異なる位置に結合している。但し、n3が0のときは、*3と*6とが*4及び*5を介さずに直結する。
 *6は、Rb17~Rb19のいずれかの代わりにベンゼン環に結合していることを示す。
 Ry1は、炭素数1~30のアルキル基、又は環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基である。
 n4は、1以上の整数である。
 *7は、Ry1の結合位置を示しており、Ry1は、(d)Rc1、Rc2及びRb17~Rb22から選択される少なくとも1種の代わりにベンゼン環に結合しているか、(e)Rc1、Rc2、R及びRb17~Rb22から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合しているか、又は、前記(d)及び前記(e)の両方の態様を満たす。]
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000023

[式(iii)中、
 Rb23~Rb30及びRe1~Re5は、それぞれ独立に、
水素原子、ハロゲン原子、ニトロ基、シアノ基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、
-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、
-O-(R904)で表される基、
-S-(R905)で表される基、又は
-N(R906)(R907)で表される基;
 前記R901~R907は、それぞれ独立して、
水素原子、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、又は
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基;
であって、Rb23~Rb30中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
 *8は、式(1)中に示されている窒素原子との結合位置を示す。
 *9は、式(iii)中に示されている窒素原子がRe1~Re5のいずれかの代わりにベンゼン環に結合していることを示している。
 Ry2は、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~30のアルキル基、又は置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基である。
 n5は、1以上の整数である。
 *10は、Ry2の結合位置を示しており、Ry2は、(f)Rb23~Rb30から選択される少なくとも1種の代わりにベンゼン環に結合しているか、(g)Rb23~Rb30から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合している、又は、前記(f)及び前記(g)の両方の態様を満たす。] In one embodiment, the present invention provides a compound represented by the following formula (1) [hereinafter sometimes referred to as compound (1)].
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000020

[In formula (1),
R a1 to R a4 are each independently a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms, and R a1 and R a2 , and R a3 and R a4 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
R 1 , R 2 , and R b1 to R b12 are each independently,
Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ),
A group represented by -O-(R 904 ),
A group represented by -S-(R 905 ) or a group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 );
The above R 901 to R 907 are each independently,
hydrogen atom,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
A substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
Two adjacent groups in R b1 to R b12 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
Ar 1 is a group represented by any of the following formulas (i) to (iii). ]
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000021

[In formula (i),
R b13 to R b16 are each independently,
Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ),
A group represented by -O-(R 904 ),
A group represented by -S-(R 905 ) or a group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 );
The above R 901 to R 907 are each independently,
hydrogen atom,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
A substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
Two adjacent groups in R b13 to R b16 may be bonded to each other to form a benzene ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
Ar 2 is a substituted or unsubstituted phenylene group or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthylene group.
Ar 3 is a substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group, or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group when two adjacent groups in R b13 to R b16 are not bonded to each other ; When two adjacent groups in R b16 are bonded to each other to form a benzene ring, it is a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group, or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group.
n1 is 0, 1, or 2.
*1 indicates the bonding position with the nitrogen atom shown in formula (1).
n2 is an integer of 1 or more.
When n2 is 1, R x is a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 3 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms (excluding an adamantyl group). When n2 is an integer of 2 or more, it is an alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
*2 indicates the bonding position of R x , and R x is (a) bonded to the benzene ring instead of at least one selected from R b13 to R b16 , or (b) R x (c) is bonded to at least one group selected from the group consisting of Ar 2 and Ar 3 , or ( a ) - Meets two or more aspects selected from the group consisting of (c). ]
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000022

[In formula (ii),
X is -O-, -S-, or -N(-R 3 )- [R 3 is an alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms or an aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms. ].
R c1 , R c2 , R b17 to R b22 and R d1 to R d6 are each independently,
Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ),
A group represented by -O-(R 904 ),
A group represented by -S-(R 905 ) or a group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 );
The above R 901 to R 907 are each independently,
hydrogen atom,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
A substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
Two adjacent groups in R c1 , R c2 and R b17 to R b22 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
n3 is 0 or 1.
*3 indicates the bonding position with the nitrogen atom shown in formula (1).
*4 and *5 indicate that they are bonded to the benzene ring instead of any one of R d1 to R d6 , and are bonded to different positions, respectively. However, when n3 is 0, *3 and *6 are directly connected without going through *4 and *5.
*6 indicates that it is bonded to the benzene ring instead of any one of R b17 to R b19 .
R y1 is an alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
n4 is an integer of 1 or more.
*7 indicates the bonding position of R y1 , and R y1 is bonded to the benzene ring instead of (d) at least one selected from R c1 , R c2 and R b17 to R b22 ; (e) It is bonded to at least one group selected from R c1 , R c2 , R 3 and R b17 to R b22 , or satisfies both aspects (d) and (e) above. ]
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000023

[In formula (iii),
R b23 to R b30 and R e1 to R e5 are each independently,
Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ),
A group represented by -O-(R 904 ),
A group represented by -S-(R 905 ) or a group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 );
The above R 901 to R 907 are each independently,
hydrogen atom,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
A substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
Two adjacent groups in R b23 to R b30 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
*8 indicates the bonding position with the nitrogen atom shown in formula (1).
*9 indicates that the nitrogen atom shown in formula (iii) is bonded to the benzene ring instead of any one of R e1 to R e5 .
R y2 is a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
n5 is an integer of 1 or more.
*10 indicates the bonding position of R y2 , and R y2 is bonded to the benzene ring instead of (f) at least one selected from R b23 to R b30 , or (g) R b23 to R b30. It is bonded to at least one group selected from R b30 , or satisfies both aspects (f) and (g) above. ]

 他の態様において、本発明は、前記化合物(1)を含む有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子を提供する。
 さらに他の態様において、本発明は、前記有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子を含む電子機器を提供する。
In another aspect, the present invention provides an organic electroluminescent device comprising the compound (1).
In yet another aspect, the present invention provides an electronic device including the organic electroluminescent device.

 前記式(1)で表される化合物を含む有機EL素子は改善された素子性能を示す。 An organic EL device containing the compound represented by formula (1) above exhibits improved device performance.

本発明の一態様に係る有機EL素子の層構成の一例を示す概略図である。1 is a schematic diagram showing an example of a layer structure of an organic EL element according to one embodiment of the present invention. 本発明の一態様に係る有機EL素子の層構成の他の例を示す概略図である。FIG. 3 is a schematic diagram illustrating another example of the layer structure of an organic EL element according to one embodiment of the present invention. 本発明の一態様に係る有機EL素子の層構成の他の例を示す概略図である。FIG. 3 is a schematic diagram illustrating another example of the layer structure of an organic EL element according to one embodiment of the present invention.

[定義]
 本明細書において、水素原子とは、中性子数が異なる同位体、即ち、軽水素(protium)、重水素(deuterium)、及び三重水素(tritium)を包含する。
[Definition]
In this specification, the hydrogen atom includes isotopes having different numbers of neutrons, ie, light hydrogen (protium), deuterium (deuterium), and tritium (tritium).

 本明細書において、化学構造式中、「R」等の記号や重水素原子を表す「D」が明示されていない結合可能位置には、水素原子、即ち、軽水素原子、重水素原子、又は三重水素原子が結合しているものとする。 In this specification, in the chemical structural formula, a hydrogen atom, that is, a light hydrogen atom, a deuterium atom, or Assume that tritium atoms are bonded.

 本明細書において、環形成炭素数とは、原子が環状に結合した構造の化合物(例えば、単環化合物、縮合環化合物、架橋化合物、炭素環化合物、及び複素環化合物)の当該環自体を構成する原子のうちの炭素原子の数を表す。当該環が置換基によって置換される場合、置換基に含まれる炭素は環形成炭素数には含まない。以下で記される「環形成炭素数」については、別途記載のない限り同様とする。例えば、ベンゼン環は環形成炭素数が6であり、ナフタレン環は環形成炭素数が10であり、ピリジン環は環形成炭素数5であり、フラン環は環形成炭素数4である。また、例えば、9,9-ジフェニルフルオレニル基の環形成炭素数は13であり、9,9’-スピロビフルオレニル基の環形成炭素数は25である。
 また、ベンゼン環に置換基として、例えば、アルキル基が置換している場合、当該アルキル基の炭素数は、ベンゼン環の環形成炭素数に含めない。そのため、アルキル基が置換しているベンゼン環の環形成炭素数は、6である。また、ナフタレン環に置換基として、例えば、アルキル基が置換している場合、当該アルキル基の炭素数は、ナフタレン環の環形成炭素数に含めない。そのため、アルキル基が置換しているナフタレン環の環形成炭素数は、10である。
In this specification, the number of carbon atoms forming a ring refers to the number of carbon atoms constituting the ring itself of a compound having a structure in which atoms are bonded in a cyclic manner (for example, a monocyclic compound, a fused ring compound, a bridged compound, a carbocyclic compound, and a heterocyclic compound). represents the number of carbon atoms among the atoms. When the ring is substituted with a substituent, the carbon contained in the substituent is not included in the number of carbon atoms forming the ring. The "number of ring carbon atoms" described below is the same unless otherwise specified. For example, a benzene ring has 6 carbon atoms, a naphthalene ring has 10 carbon atoms, a pyridine ring has 5 carbon atoms, and a furan ring has 4 carbon atoms. Further, for example, the number of ring carbon atoms in the 9,9-diphenylfluorenyl group is 13, and the number of ring carbon atoms in the 9,9'-spirobifluorenyl group is 25.
Further, when the benzene ring is substituted with an alkyl group as a substituent, for example, the number of carbon atoms of the alkyl group is not included in the number of carbon atoms forming the benzene ring. Therefore, the number of ring carbon atoms in the benzene ring substituted with an alkyl group is 6. Further, when the naphthalene ring is substituted with an alkyl group as a substituent, for example, the number of carbon atoms of the alkyl group is not included in the number of carbon atoms forming the naphthalene ring. Therefore, the number of ring carbon atoms in the naphthalene ring substituted with an alkyl group is 10.

 本明細書において、環形成原子数とは、原子が環状に結合した構造(例えば、単環、縮合環、及び環集合)の化合物(例えば、単環化合物、縮合環化合物、架橋化合物、炭素環化合物、及び複素環化合物)の当該環自体を構成する原子の数を表す。環を構成しない原子(例えば、環を構成する原子の結合を終端する水素原子)や、当該環が置換基によって置換される場合の置換基に含まれる原子は環形成原子数には含まない。以下で記される「環形成原子数」については、別途記載のない限り同様とする。例えば、ピリジン環の環形成原子数は6であり、キナゾリン環の環形成原子数は10であり、フラン環の環形成原子数は5である。例えば、ピリジン環に結合している水素原子、又は置換基を構成する原子の数は、ピリジン環形成原子数の数に含めない。そのため、水素原子、又は置換基が結合しているピリジン環の環形成原子数は、6である。また、例えば、キナゾリン環の炭素原子に結合している水素原子、又は置換基を構成する原子については、キナゾリン環の環形成原子数の数に含めない。そのため、水素原子、又は置換基が結合しているキナゾリン環の環形成原子数は10である。 In this specification, the number of ring-forming atoms refers to compounds with a structure in which atoms are bonded in a cyclic manner (e.g., monocyclic, fused ring, and ring assembly) (e.g., monocyclic compound, fused ring compound, bridged compound, carbocyclic compound). Represents the number of atoms that constitute the ring itself (compounds and heterocyclic compounds). Atoms that do not form a ring (for example, a hydrogen atom that terminates a bond between atoms that form a ring) and atoms that are included in a substituent when the ring is substituted with a substituent are not included in the number of ring-forming atoms. The "number of ring-forming atoms" described below is the same unless otherwise specified. For example, the number of ring atoms in the pyridine ring is 6, the number of ring atoms in the quinazoline ring is 10, and the number of ring atoms in the furan ring is 5. For example, the number of hydrogen atoms bonded to the pyridine ring or atoms constituting substituents is not included in the number of atoms forming the pyridine ring. Therefore, the number of ring atoms of the pyridine ring to which hydrogen atoms or substituents are bonded is six. Furthermore, for example, hydrogen atoms bonded to carbon atoms of the quinazoline ring or atoms constituting substituents are not included in the number of ring-forming atoms of the quinazoline ring. Therefore, the number of ring atoms in the quinazoline ring to which hydrogen atoms or substituents are bonded is 10.

 本明細書において、「置換もしくは無置換の炭素数XX~YYのZZ基」という表現における「炭素数XX~YY」は、ZZ基が無置換である場合の炭素数を表し、置換されている場合の置換基の炭素数を含めない。ここで、「YY」は、「XX」よりも大きく、「XX」は、1以上の整数を意味し、「YY」は、2以上の整数を意味する。 In the present specification, "carbon number XX to YY" in the expression "substituted or unsubstituted ZZ group with carbon number XX to YY" represents the number of carbon atoms when the ZZ group is unsubstituted, and is substituted. Do not include the number of carbon atoms in substituents. Here, "YY" is larger than "XX", "XX" means an integer of 1 or more, and "YY" means an integer of 2 or more.

 本明細書において、「置換もしくは無置換の原子数XX~YYのZZ基」という表現における「原子数XX~YY」は、ZZ基が無置換である場合の原子数を表し、置換されている場合の置換基の原子数を含めない。ここで、「YY」は、「XX」よりも大きく、「XX」は、1以上の整数を意味し、「YY」は、2以上の整数を意味する。 In this specification, "number of atoms XX to YY" in the expression "substituted or unsubstituted ZZ group with number of atoms XX to YY" represents the number of atoms when the ZZ group is unsubstituted, and is substituted. Do not include the number of atoms of substituents in case. Here, "YY" is larger than "XX", "XX" means an integer of 1 or more, and "YY" means an integer of 2 or more.

 本明細書において、無置換のZZ基とは「置換もしくは無置換のZZ基」が「無置換のZZ基」である場合を表し、置換のZZ基とは「置換もしくは無置換のZZ基」が「置換のZZ基」である場合を表す。
 本明細書において、「置換もしくは無置換のZZ基」という場合における「無置換」とは、ZZ基における水素原子が置換基と置き換わっていないことを意味する。「無置換のZZ基」における水素原子は、軽水素原子、重水素原子、又は三重水素原子である。
 また、本明細書において、「置換もしくは無置換のZZ基」という場合における「置換」とは、ZZ基における1つ以上の水素原子が、置換基と置き換わっていることを意味する。「AA基で置換されたBB基」という場合における「置換」も同様に、BB基における1つ以上の水素原子が、AA基と置き換わっていることを意味する。
In this specification, an unsubstituted ZZ group refers to a case where a "substituted or unsubstituted ZZ group" is an "unsubstituted ZZ group", and a substituted ZZ group refers to a "substituted or unsubstituted ZZ group". represents the case where is a "substituted ZZ group".
In the present specification, "unsubstituted" in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted ZZ group" means that the hydrogen atom in the ZZ group is not replaced with a substituent. The hydrogen atom in the "unsubstituted ZZ group" is a light hydrogen atom, a deuterium atom, or a tritium atom.
Moreover, in this specification, "substituted" in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted ZZ group" means that one or more hydrogen atoms in the ZZ group are replaced with a substituent. "Substitution" in the case of "BB group substituted with AA group" similarly means that one or more hydrogen atoms in the BB group are replaced with an AA group.

「本明細書に記載の置換基」
 以下、本明細書に記載の置換基について説明する。
"Substituents described herein"
The substituents described in this specification will be explained below.

 本明細書に記載の「無置換のアリール基」の環形成炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、6~50であり、好ましくは6~30、より好ましくは6~18である。
 本明細書に記載の「無置換の複素環基」の環形成原子数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、5~50であり、好ましくは5~30、より好ましくは5~18である。
 本明細書に記載の「無置換のアルキル基」の炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、1~50であり、好ましくは1~20、より好ましくは1~6である。
 本明細書に記載の「無置換のアルケニル基」の炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、2~50であり、好ましくは2~20、より好ましくは2~6である。
 本明細書に記載の「無置換のアルキニル基」の炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、2~50であり、好ましくは2~20、より好ましくは2~6である。
 本明細書に記載の「無置換のシクロアルキル基」の環形成炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、3~50であり、好ましくは3~20、より好ましくは3~6である。
 本明細書に記載の「無置換のアリーレン基」の環形成炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、6~50であり、好ましくは6~30、より好ましくは6~18である。
 本明細書に記載の「無置換の2価の複素環基」の環形成原子数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、5~50であり、好ましくは5~30、より好ましくは5~18である。
 本明細書に記載の「無置換のアルキレン基」の炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、1~50であり、好ましくは1~20、より好ましくは1~6である。
The number of ring carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted aryl group" described herein is 6 to 50, preferably 6 to 30, more preferably 6 to 18, unless otherwise specified herein. .
The number of ring atoms of the "unsubstituted heterocyclic group" described herein is 5 to 50, preferably 5 to 30, more preferably 5 to 18, unless otherwise specified herein. be.
The number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted alkyl group" described herein is 1 to 50, preferably 1 to 20, more preferably 1 to 6, unless otherwise specified herein.
The number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted alkenyl group" described herein is 2 to 50, preferably 2 to 20, more preferably 2 to 6, unless otherwise specified herein.
The number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted alkynyl group" described herein is 2 to 50, preferably 2 to 20, more preferably 2 to 6, unless otherwise specified herein.
Unless otherwise specified herein, the number of ring carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted cycloalkyl group" described herein is 3 to 50, preferably 3 to 20, more preferably 3 to 6. be.
Unless otherwise specified herein, the number of ring carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted arylene group" described herein is 6 to 50, preferably 6 to 30, more preferably 6 to 18. .
The number of ring atoms of the "unsubstituted divalent heterocyclic group" described herein is 5 to 50, preferably 5 to 30, more preferably 5 unless otherwise specified herein. ~18.
The number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted alkylene group" described herein is 1 to 50, preferably 1 to 20, more preferably 1 to 6, unless otherwise specified herein.

・「置換もしくは無置換のアリール基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアリール基」の具体例(具体例群G1)としては、以下の無置換のアリール基(具体例群G1A)及び置換のアリール基(具体例群G1B)等が挙げられる。(ここで、無置換のアリール基とは「置換もしくは無置換のアリール基」が「無置換のアリール基」である場合を指し、置換のアリール基とは「置換もしくは無置換のアリール基」が「置換のアリール基」である場合を指す。)本明細書において、単に「アリール基」という場合は、「無置換のアリール基」と「置換のアリール基」の両方を含む。
 「置換のアリール基」は、「無置換のアリール基」の1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基を意味する。「置換のアリール基」としては、例えば、下記具体例群G1Aの「無置換のアリール基」の1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基、及び下記具体例群G1Bの置換のアリール基の例等が挙げられる。なお、ここに列挙した「無置換のアリール基」の例、及び「置換のアリール基」の例は、一例に過ぎず、本明細書に記載の「置換のアリール基」には、下記具体例群G1Bの「置換のアリール基」におけるアリール基自体の炭素原子に結合する水素原子がさらに置換基と置き換わった基、及び下記具体例群G1Bの「置換のアリール基」における置換基の水素原子がさらに置換基と置き換わった基も含まれる。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted aryl group”
Specific examples (specific example group G1) of the "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group" described in this specification include the following unsubstituted aryl groups (specific example group G1A) and substituted aryl groups (specific example group G1B). ) etc. (Here, the unsubstituted aryl group refers to the case where the "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group" is an "unsubstituted aryl group", and the substituted aryl group refers to the case where the "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group" is (Refers to the case where it is a "substituted aryl group.") In this specification, the mere mention of "aryl group" includes both "unsubstituted aryl group" and "substituted aryl group."
"Substituted aryl group" means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms of "unsubstituted aryl group" are replaced with a substituent. Examples of the "substituted aryl group" include a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms of the "unsubstituted aryl group" in the specific example group G1A below are replaced with a substituent, and a substituted aryl group in the following specific example group G1B. Examples include: The examples of "unsubstituted aryl group" and "substituted aryl group" listed here are just examples, and the "substituted aryl group" described in this specification includes the following specific examples. A group in which the hydrogen atom bonded to the carbon atom of the aryl group itself in the "substituted aryl group" of Group G1B is further replaced with a substituent, and a hydrogen atom of the substituent in the "substituted aryl group" in the following specific example group G1B is Furthermore, groups substituted with substituents are also included.

・無置換のアリール基(具体例群G1A):
フェニル基、
p-ビフェニル基、
m-ビフェニル基、
o-ビフェニル基、
p-ターフェニル-4-イル基、
p-ターフェニル-3-イル基、
p-ターフェニル-2-イル基、
m-ターフェニル-4-イル基、
m-ターフェニル-3-イル基、
m-ターフェニル-2-イル基、
o-ターフェニル-4-イル基、
o-ターフェニル-3-イル基、
o-ターフェニル-2-イル基、
1-ナフチル基、
2-ナフチル基、
アントリル基、
ベンゾアントリル基、
フェナントリル基、
ベンゾフェナントリル基、
フェナレニル基、
ピレニル基、
クリセニル基、
ベンゾクリセニル基、
トリフェニレニル基、
ベンゾトリフェニレニル基、
テトラセニル基、
ペンタセニル基、
フルオレニル基、
9,9’-スピロビフルオレニル基、
ベンゾフルオレニル基、
ジベンゾフルオレニル基、
フルオランテニル基、
ベンゾフルオランテニル基、
ペリレニル基、及び
下記一般式(TEMP-1)~(TEMP-15)で表される環構造から1つの水素原子を除くことにより誘導される1価のアリール基。
・Unsubstituted aryl group (specific example group G1A):
phenyl group,
p-biphenyl group,
m-biphenyl group,
o-biphenyl group,
p-terphenyl-4-yl group,
p-terphenyl-3-yl group,
p-terphenyl-2-yl group,
m-terphenyl-4-yl group,
m-terphenyl-3-yl group,
m-terphenyl-2-yl group,
o-terphenyl-4-yl group,
o-terphenyl-3-yl group,
o-terphenyl-2-yl group,
1-naphthyl group,
2-naphthyl group,
anthryl group,
benzanthryl group,
phenanthryl group,
benzophenanthryl group,
phenalenyl group,
pyrenyl group,
chrysenyl group,
benzocrysenyl group,
triphenylenyl group,
benzotriphenylenyl group,
tetracenyl group,
pentacenyl group,
fluorenyl group,
9,9'-spirobifluorenyl group,
benzofluorenyl group,
dibenzofluorenyl group,
fluoranthenyl group,
benzofluoranthenyl group,
A monovalent aryl group derived by removing one hydrogen atom from a perylenyl group and a ring structure represented by the following general formulas (TEMP-1) to (TEMP-15).

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000024
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000024

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000025
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000025

・置換のアリール基(具体例群G1B):
o-トリル基、
m-トリル基、
p-トリル基、
パラ-キシリル基、
メタ-キシリル基、
オルト-キシリル基、
パラ-イソプロピルフェニル基、
メタ-イソプロピルフェニル基、
オルト-イソプロピルフェニル基、
パラ-t-ブチルフェニル基、
メタ-t-ブチルフェニル基、
オルト-t-ブチルフェニル基、
3,4,5-トリメチルフェニル基、
9,9-ジメチルフルオレニル基、
9,9-ジフェニルフルオレニル基
9,9-ビス(4-メチルフェニル)フルオレニル基、
9,9-ビス(4-イソプロピルフェニル)フルオレニル基、
9,9-ビス(4-t-ブチルフェニル)フルオレニル基、
シアノフェニル基、
トリフェニルシリルフェニル基、
トリメチルシリルフェニル基、
フェニルナフチル基、
ナフチルフェニル基、及び
前記一般式(TEMP-1)~(TEMP-15)で表される環構造から誘導される1価の基の1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基。
・Substituted aryl group (specific example group G1B):
o-tolyl group,
m-tolyl group,
p-tolyl group,
para-xylyl group,
meta-xylyl group,
ortho-xylyl group,
para-isopropylphenyl group,
meta-isopropylphenyl group,
ortho-isopropylphenyl group,
para-t-butylphenyl group,
meta-t-butylphenyl group,
ortho-t-butylphenyl group,
3,4,5-trimethylphenyl group,
9,9-dimethylfluorenyl group,
9,9-diphenylfluorenyl group 9,9-bis(4-methylphenyl)fluorenyl group,
9,9-bis(4-isopropylphenyl)fluorenyl group,
9,9-bis(4-t-butylphenyl)fluorenyl group,
cyanophenyl group,
triphenylsilylphenyl group,
trimethylsilylphenyl group,
phenylnaphthyl group,
A group in which one or more hydrogen atoms of a monovalent group derived from a naphthylphenyl group and a ring structure represented by the above general formulas (TEMP-1) to (TEMP-15) are replaced with a substituent.

・「置換もしくは無置換の複素環基」
 本明細書に記載の「複素環基」は、環形成原子にヘテロ原子を少なくとも1つ含む環状の基である。ヘテロ原子の具体例としては、窒素原子、酸素原子、硫黄原子、ケイ素原子、リン原子、及びホウ素原子が挙げられる。
 本明細書に記載の「複素環基」は、単環の基であるか、又は縮合環の基である。
 本明細書に記載の「複素環基」は、芳香族複素環基であるか、又は非芳香族複素環基である。
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換の複素環基」の具体例(具体例群G2)としては、以下の無置換の複素環基(具体例群G2A)、及び置換の複素環基(具体例群G2B)等が挙げられる。(ここで、無置換の複素環基とは「置換もしくは無置換の複素環基」が「無置換の複素環基」である場合を指し、置換の複素環基とは「置換もしくは無置換の複素環基」が「置換の複素環基」である場合を指す。)本明細書において、単に「複素環基」という場合は、「無置換の複素環基」と「置換の複素環基」の両方を含む。
 「置換の複素環基」は、「無置換の複素環基」の1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基を意味する。「置換の複素環基」の具体例は、下記具体例群G2Aの「無置換の複素環基」の水素原子が置き換わった基、及び下記具体例群G2Bの置換の複素環基の例等が挙げられる。なお、ここに列挙した「無置換の複素環基」の例や「置換の複素環基」の例は、一例に過ぎず、本明細書に記載の「置換の複素環基」には、具体例群G2Bの「置換の複素環基」における複素環基自体の環形成原子に結合する水素原子がさらに置換基と置き換わった基、及び具体例群G2Bの「置換の複素環基」における置換基の水素原子がさらに置換基と置き換わった基も含まれる。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group”
The "heterocyclic group" described herein is a cyclic group containing at least one heteroatom as a ring-forming atom. Specific examples of heteroatoms include nitrogen atom, oxygen atom, sulfur atom, silicon atom, phosphorus atom, and boron atom.
A "heterocyclic group" as described herein is a monocyclic group or a fused ring group.
A "heterocyclic group" as described herein is an aromatic heterocyclic group or a non-aromatic heterocyclic group.
Specific examples of the "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group" (specific example group G2) described in this specification include the following unsubstituted heterocyclic group (specific example group G2A) and substituted heterocyclic group ( Examples include specific example group G2B). (Here, the term "unsubstituted heterocyclic group" refers to the case where "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group" is "unsubstituted heterocyclic group", and the term "substituted heterocyclic group" refers to "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group"). "Heterocyclic group" refers to a "substituted heterocyclic group.") In this specification, simply "heterocyclic group" refers to "unsubstituted heterocyclic group" and "substituted heterocyclic group." including both.
"Substituted heterocyclic group" means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms of "unsubstituted heterocyclic group" are replaced with a substituent. Specific examples of the "substituted heterocyclic group" include a group in which the hydrogen atom of the "unsubstituted heterocyclic group" in specific example group G2A is replaced, and examples of substituted heterocyclic groups in specific example group G2B below. Can be mentioned. Note that the examples of "unsubstituted heterocyclic group" and "substituted heterocyclic group" listed here are just examples, and the "substituted heterocyclic group" described in this specification includes specific examples. A group in which the hydrogen atom bonded to the ring-forming atom of the heterocyclic group itself in the "substituted heterocyclic group" in example group G2B is further replaced with a substituent, and a substituent in the "substituted heterocyclic group" in specific example group G2B Also included are groups in which the hydrogen atom is further replaced with a substituent.

 具体例群G2Aは、例えば、以下の窒素原子を含む無置換の複素環基(具体例群G2A1)、酸素原子を含む無置換の複素環基(具体例群G2A2)、硫黄原子を含む無置換の複素環基(具体例群G2A3)、及び下記一般式(TEMP-16)~(TEMP-33)で表される環構造から1つの水素原子を除くことにより誘導される1価の複素環基(具体例群G2A4)を含む。 Specific example group G2A includes, for example, the following unsubstituted heterocyclic groups containing a nitrogen atom (specific example group G2A1), unsubstituted heterocyclic groups containing an oxygen atom (specific example group G2A2), and unsubstituted heterocyclic groups containing a sulfur atom. heterocyclic group (specific example group G2A3), and a monovalent heterocyclic group derived by removing one hydrogen atom from the ring structure represented by the following general formulas (TEMP-16) to (TEMP-33) (Specific example group G2A4).

 具体例群G2Bは、例えば、以下の窒素原子を含む置換の複素環基(具体例群G2B1)、酸素原子を含む置換の複素環基(具体例群G2B2)、硫黄原子を含む置換の複素環基(具体例群G2B3)、及び下記一般式(TEMP-16)~(TEMP-33)で表される環構造から誘導される1価の複素環基の1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基(具体例群G2B4)を含む。 Specific example group G2B includes, for example, the following substituted heterocyclic groups containing a nitrogen atom (specific example group G2B1), substituted heterocyclic groups containing an oxygen atom (specific example group G2B2), and substituted heterocyclic groups containing a sulfur atom. group (Specific Example Group G2B3), and one or more hydrogen atoms of a monovalent heterocyclic group derived from a ring structure represented by the following general formulas (TEMP-16) to (TEMP-33) are substituents. Includes substituted groups (Example Group G2B4).

・窒素原子を含む無置換の複素環基(具体例群G2A1):
ピロリル基、
イミダゾリル基、
ピラゾリル基、
トリアゾリル基、
テトラゾリル基、
オキサゾリル基、
イソオキサゾリル基、
オキサジアゾリル基、
チアゾリル基、
イソチアゾリル基、
チアジアゾリル基、
ピリジル基、
ピリダジニル基、
ピリミジニル基、
ピラジニル基、
トリアジニル基、
インドリル基、
イソインドリル基、
インドリジニル基、
キノリジニル基、
キノリル基、
イソキノリル基、
シンノリル基、
フタラジニル基、
キナゾリニル基、
キノキサリニル基、
ベンゾイミダゾリル基、
インダゾリル基、
フェナントロリニル基、
フェナントリジニル基、
アクリジニル基、
フェナジニル基、
カルバゾリル基、
ベンゾカルバゾリル基、
モルホリノ基、
フェノキサジニル基、
フェノチアジニル基、
アザカルバゾリル基、及びジアザカルバゾリル基。
・Unsubstituted heterocyclic group containing a nitrogen atom (specific example group G2A1):
pyrrolyl group,
imidazolyl group,
pyrazolyl group,
triazolyl group,
Tetrazolyl group,
oxazolyl group,
isoxazolyl group,
oxadiazolyl group,
thiazolyl group,
isothiazolyl group,
thiadiazolyl group,
pyridyl group,
pyridazinyl group,
pyrimidinyl group,
pyrazinyl group,
triazinyl group,
indolyl group,
isoindolyl group,
indolizinyl group,
quinolidinyl group,
quinolyl group,
isoquinolyl group,
cinnolyl group,
phthalazinyl group,
quinazolinyl group,
quinoxalinyl group,
benzimidazolyl group,
indazolyl group,
phenanthrolinyl group,
phenanthridinyl group,
acridinyl group,
phenazinyl group,
carbazolyl group,
benzocarbazolyl group,
morpholino group,
phenoxazinyl group,
phenothiazinyl group,
Azacarbazolyl group and diazacarbazolyl group.

・酸素原子を含む無置換の複素環基(具体例群G2A2):
フリル基、
オキサゾリル基、
イソオキサゾリル基、
オキサジアゾリル基、
キサンテニル基、
ベンゾフラニル基、
イソベンゾフラニル基、
ジベンゾフラニル基、
ナフトベンゾフラニル基、
ベンゾオキサゾリル基、
ベンゾイソキサゾリル基、
フェノキサジニル基、
モルホリノ基、
ジナフトフラニル基、
アザジベンゾフラニル基、
ジアザジベンゾフラニル基、
アザナフトベンゾフラニル基、及び
ジアザナフトベンゾフラニル基。
・Unsubstituted heterocyclic group containing an oxygen atom (specific example group G2A2):
frill group,
oxazolyl group,
isoxazolyl group,
oxadiazolyl group,
xanthenyl group,
benzofuranyl group,
isobenzofuranyl group,
dibenzofuranyl group,
naphthobenzofuranyl group,
benzoxazolyl group,
benzisoxazolyl group,
phenoxazinyl group,
morpholino group,
dinaphthofuranyl group,
azadibenzofuranyl group,
diazadibenzofuranyl group,
Azanaphthobenzofuranyl group, and diazanaphthobenzofuranyl group.

・硫黄原子を含む無置換の複素環基(具体例群G2A3):
チエニル基、
チアゾリル基、
イソチアゾリル基、
チアジアゾリル基、
ベンゾチオフェニル基(ベンゾチエニル基)、
イソベンゾチオフェニル基(イソベンゾチエニル基)、
ジベンゾチオフェニル基(ジベンゾチエニル基)、
ナフトベンゾチオフェニル基(ナフトベンゾチエニル基)、
ベンゾチアゾリル基、
ベンゾイソチアゾリル基、
フェノチアジニル基、
ジナフトチオフェニル基(ジナフトチエニル基)、
アザジベンゾチオフェニル基(アザジベンゾチエニル基)、
ジアザジベンゾチオフェニル基(ジアザジベンゾチエニル基)、
アザナフトベンゾチオフェニル基(アザナフトベンゾチエニル基)、及び
ジアザナフトベンゾチオフェニル基(ジアザナフトベンゾチエニル基)。
・Unsubstituted heterocyclic group containing a sulfur atom (specific example group G2A3):
thienyl group,
thiazolyl group,
isothiazolyl group,
thiadiazolyl group,
benzothiophenyl group (benzothienyl group),
Isobenzothiophenyl group (isobenzothienyl group),
dibenzothiophenyl group (dibenzothienyl group),
naphthobenzothiophenyl group (naphthobenzothienyl group),
benzothiazolyl group,
benzisothiazolyl group,
phenothiazinyl group,
dinaphthothiophenyl group (dinaphthothienyl group),
Azadibenzothiophenyl group (azadibenzothienyl group),
Diazadibenzothiophenyl group (diazadibenzothienyl group),
Azanaphthobenzothiophenyl group (azanaphthobenzothienyl group), and diazanaphthobenzothiophenyl group (diazanaphthobenzothienyl group).

・下記一般式(TEMP-16)~(TEMP-33)で表される環構造から1つの水素原子を除くことにより誘導される1価の複素環基(具体例群G2A4): - Monovalent heterocyclic groups derived by removing one hydrogen atom from the ring structures represented by the following general formulas (TEMP-16) to (TEMP-33) (specific example group G2A4):

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000026
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000026

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000027
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000027

 前記一般式(TEMP-16)~(TEMP-33)において、X及びYは、それぞれ独立に、酸素原子、硫黄原子、NH、又はCHである。ただし、X及びYのうち少なくとも1つは、酸素原子、硫黄原子、又はNHである。
 前記一般式(TEMP-16)~(TEMP-33)において、X及びYの少なくともいずれかがNH、又はCHである場合、前記一般式(TEMP-16)~(TEMP-33)で表される環構造から誘導される1価の複素環基には、これらNH、又はCHから1つの水素原子を除いて得られる1価の基が含まれる。
In the general formulas (TEMP-16) to (TEMP-33), X A and Y A are each independently an oxygen atom, a sulfur atom, NH, or CH 2 . However, at least one of X A and Y A is an oxygen atom, a sulfur atom, or NH.
In the general formulas (TEMP-16) to (TEMP-33), when at least one of X A and Y A is NH or CH 2 , in the general formulas (TEMP-16) to (TEMP-33), The monovalent heterocyclic group derived from the represented ring structure includes a monovalent group obtained by removing one hydrogen atom from these NH or CH 2 .

・窒素原子を含む置換の複素環基(具体例群G2B1):
(9-フェニル)カルバゾリル基、
(9-ビフェニリル)カルバゾリル基、
(9-フェニル)フェニルカルバゾリル基、
(9-ナフチル)カルバゾリル基、
ジフェニルカルバゾール-9-イル基、
フェニルカルバゾール-9-イル基、
メチルベンゾイミダゾリル基、
エチルベンゾイミダゾリル基、
フェニルトリアジニル基、
ビフェニリルトリアジニル基、
ジフェニルトリアジニル基、
フェニルキナゾリニル基、及び
ビフェニリルキナゾリニル基。
・Substituted heterocyclic group containing a nitrogen atom (specific example group G2B1):
(9-phenyl)carbazolyl group,
(9-biphenylyl)carbazolyl group,
(9-phenyl)phenylcarbazolyl group,
(9-naphthyl)carbazolyl group,
diphenylcarbazol-9-yl group,
phenylcarbazol-9-yl group,
methylbenzimidazolyl group,
ethylbenzimidazolyl group,
phenyltriazinyl group,
biphenylyltriazinyl group,
diphenyltriazinyl group,
phenylquinazolinyl group, and biphenylylquinazolinyl group.

・酸素原子を含む置換の複素環基(具体例群G2B2):
フェニルジベンゾフラニル基、
メチルジベンゾフラニル基、
t-ブチルジベンゾフラニル基、及び
スピロ[9H-キサンテン-9,9’-[9H]フルオレン]の1価の残基。
・Substituted heterocyclic group containing an oxygen atom (specific example group G2B2):
phenyldibenzofuranyl group,
methyldibenzofuranyl group,
A t-butyldibenzofuranyl group and a monovalent residue of spiro[9H-xanthene-9,9'-[9H]fluorene].

・硫黄原子を含む置換の複素環基(具体例群G2B3):
フェニルジベンゾチオフェニル基、
メチルジベンゾチオフェニル基、
t-ブチルジベンゾチオフェニル基、及び
スピロ[9H-チオキサンテン-9,9’-[9H]フルオレン]の1価の残基。
・Substituted heterocyclic group containing a sulfur atom (specific example group G2B3):
phenyldibenzothiophenyl group,
methyldibenzothiophenyl group,
A t-butyldibenzothiophenyl group and a monovalent residue of spiro[9H-thioxanthene-9,9'-[9H]fluorene].

・前記一般式(TEMP-16)~(TEMP-33)で表される環構造から誘導される1価の複素環基の1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基(具体例群G2B4): - A group in which one or more hydrogen atoms of a monovalent heterocyclic group derived from the ring structure represented by the general formulas (TEMP-16) to (TEMP-33) is replaced with a substituent (specific example group G2B4) ):

 前記「1価の複素環基の1つ以上の水素原子」とは、該1価の複素環基の環形成炭素原子に結合している水素原子、XA及びYAの少なくともいずれかがNHである場合の窒素原子に結合している水素原子、及びXA及びYAの一方がCH2である場合のメチレン基の水素原子から選ばれる1つ以上の水素原子を意味する。 The above-mentioned "one or more hydrogen atoms of a monovalent heterocyclic group" refers to a hydrogen atom bonded to a ring-forming carbon atom of the monovalent heterocyclic group, and at least one of XA and YA is NH. It means one or more hydrogen atoms selected from the hydrogen atom bonded to the nitrogen atom in the case where XA and YA are CH2, and the hydrogen atom of the methylene group when one of XA and YA is CH2.

・「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」の具体例(具体例群G3)としては、以下の無置換のアルキル基(具体例群G3A)及び置換のアルキル基(具体例群G3B)が挙げられる。(ここで、無置換のアルキル基とは「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」が「無置換のアルキル基」である場合を指し、置換のアルキル基とは「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」が「置換のアルキル基」である場合を指す。)以下、単に「アルキル基」という場合は、「無置換のアルキル基」と「置換のアルキル基」の両方を含む。
 「置換のアルキル基」は、「無置換のアルキル基」における1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基を意味する。「置換のアルキル基」の具体例としては、下記の「無置換のアルキル基」(具体例群G3A)における1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基、及び置換のアルキル基(具体例群G3B)の例等が挙げられる。本明細書において、「無置換のアルキル基」におけるアルキル基は、鎖状のアルキル基を意味する。そのため、「無置換のアルキル基」は、直鎖である「無置換のアルキル基」、及び分岐状である「無置換のアルキル基」が含まれる。なお、ここに列挙した「無置換のアルキル基」の例や「置換のアルキル基」の例は、一例に過ぎず、本明細書に記載の「置換のアルキル基」には、具体例群G3Bの「置換のアルキル基」におけるアルキル基自体の水素原子がさらに置換基と置き換わった基、及び具体例群G3Bの「置換のアルキル基」における置換基の水素原子がさらに置換基と置き換わった基も含まれる。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group”
Specific examples (specific example group G3) of the "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" described in this specification include the following unsubstituted alkyl groups (specific example group G3A) and substituted alkyl groups (specific example group G3B). ). (Here, an unsubstituted alkyl group refers to a case where a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" is an "unsubstituted alkyl group," and a substituted alkyl group refers to a case where a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" is (Refers to the case where it is a "substituted alkyl group.") Hereinafter, when it is simply referred to as an "alkyl group," it includes both an "unsubstituted alkyl group" and a "substituted alkyl group."
"Substituted alkyl group" means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms in "unsubstituted alkyl group" are replaced with a substituent. Specific examples of "substituted alkyl groups" include groups in which one or more hydrogen atoms in the following "unsubstituted alkyl groups" (specific example group G3A) are replaced with substituents, and substituted alkyl groups (specific examples Examples include group G3B). In this specification, the alkyl group in "unsubstituted alkyl group" means a chain alkyl group. Therefore, the "unsubstituted alkyl group" includes a linear "unsubstituted alkyl group" and a branched "unsubstituted alkyl group". The examples of "unsubstituted alkyl group" and "substituted alkyl group" listed here are just examples, and the "substituted alkyl group" described in this specification includes specific example group G3B. A group in which the hydrogen atom of the alkyl group itself in the "substituted alkyl group" in "Substituted alkyl group" is further replaced with a substituent, and a group in which the hydrogen atom of the substituent in the "substituted alkyl group" in Example Group G3B is further replaced with a substituent. included.

・無置換のアルキル基(具体例群G3A):
メチル基、
エチル基、
n-プロピル基、
イソプロピル基、
n-ブチル基、
イソブチル基、
s-ブチル基、及び
t-ブチル基。
・Unsubstituted alkyl group (specific example group G3A):
methyl group,
ethyl group,
n-propyl group,
isopropyl group,
n-butyl group,
isobutyl group,
s-butyl group and t-butyl group.

・置換のアルキル基(具体例群G3B):
ヘプタフルオロプロピル基(異性体を含む)、
ペンタフルオロエチル基、
2,2,2-トリフルオロエチル基、及び
トリフルオロメチル基。
・Substituted alkyl group (specific example group G3B):
heptafluoropropyl group (including isomers),
pentafluoroethyl group,
2,2,2-trifluoroethyl group and trifluoromethyl group.

・「置換もしくは無置換のアルケニル基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルケニル基」の具体例(具体例群G4)としては、以下の無置換のアルケニル基(具体例群G4A)、及び置換のアルケニル基(具体例群G4B)等が挙げられる。(ここで、無置換のアルケニル基とは「置換もしくは無置換のアルケニル基」が「無置換のアルケニル基」である場合を指し、「置換のアルケニル基」とは「置換もしくは無置換のアルケニル基」が「置換のアルケニル基」である場合を指す。)本明細書において、単に「アルケニル基」という場合は、「無置換のアルケニル基」と「置換のアルケニル基」の両方を含む。
 「置換のアルケニル基」は、「無置換のアルケニル基」における1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基を意味する。「置換のアルケニル基」の具体例としては、下記の「無置換のアルケニル基」(具体例群G4A)が置換基を有する基、及び置換のアルケニル基(具体例群G4B)の例等が挙げられる。なお、ここに列挙した「無置換のアルケニル基」の例や「置換のアルケニル基」の例は、一例に過ぎず、本明細書に記載の「置換のアルケニル基」には、具体例群G4Bの「置換のアルケニル基」におけるアルケニル基自体の水素原子がさらに置換基と置き換わった基、及び具体例群G4Bの「置換のアルケニル基」における置換基の水素原子がさらに置換基と置き換わった基も含まれる。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group”
Specific examples of the "substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group" (specific example group G4) described in this specification include the following unsubstituted alkenyl groups (specific example group G4A) and substituted alkenyl groups (specific example group G4B), etc. (Here, the term "unsubstituted alkenyl group" refers to the case where "substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group" is "unsubstituted alkenyl group", and "substituted alkenyl group" refers to "substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group"). " refers to the case where it is a "substituted alkenyl group.") In the present specification, simply "alkenyl group" includes both "unsubstituted alkenyl group" and "substituted alkenyl group."
"Substituted alkenyl group" means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms in "unsubstituted alkenyl group" are replaced with a substituent. Specific examples of the "substituted alkenyl group" include the following "unsubstituted alkenyl group" (specific example group G4A) having a substituent, and the substituted alkenyl group (specific example group G4B). It will be done. The examples of "unsubstituted alkenyl group" and "substituted alkenyl group" listed here are just examples, and the "substituted alkenyl group" described in this specification includes specific example group G4B. A group in which the hydrogen atom of the alkenyl group itself in the "substituted alkenyl group" is further replaced with a substituent, and a group in which the hydrogen atom of the substituent in the "substituted alkenyl group" in Example Group G4B is further replaced with a substituent. included.

・無置換のアルケニル基(具体例群G4A):
ビニル基、
アリル基、
1-ブテニル基、
2-ブテニル基、及び
3-ブテニル基。
・Unsubstituted alkenyl group (specific example group G4A):
vinyl group,
allyl group,
1-butenyl group,
2-butenyl group and 3-butenyl group.

・置換のアルケニル基(具体例群G4B):
1,3-ブタンジエニル基、
1-メチルビニル基、
1-メチルアリル基、
1,1-ジメチルアリル基、
2-メチルアリル基、及び
1,2-ジメチルアリル基。
・Substituted alkenyl group (specific example group G4B):
1,3-butandienyl group,
1-methylvinyl group,
1-methylallyl group,
1,1-dimethylallyl group,
2-methylallyl group and 1,2-dimethylallyl group.

・「置換もしくは無置換のアルキニル基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルキニル基」の具体例(具体例群G5)としては、以下の無置換のアルキニル基(具体例群G5A)等が挙げられる。(ここで、無置換のアルキニル基とは、「置換もしくは無置換のアルキニル基」が「無置換のアルキニル基」である場合を指す。)以下、単に「アルキニル基」という場合は、「無置換のアルキニル基」と「置換のアルキニル基」の両方を含む。
 「置換のアルキニル基」は、「無置換のアルキニル基」における1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基を意味する。「置換のアルキニル基」の具体例としては、下記の「無置換のアルキニル基」(具体例群G5A)における1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基等が挙げられる。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group”
Specific examples of the "substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group" (specific example group G5) described in this specification include the following unsubstituted alkynyl group (specific example group G5A). (Here, the term "unsubstituted alkynyl group" refers to the case where "substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group" is "unsubstituted alkynyl group.") Hereinafter, when simply "alkynyl group" is used, "unsubstituted alkynyl group" means "unsubstituted alkynyl group". ``alkynyl group'' and ``substituted alkynyl group.''
"Substituted alkynyl group" means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms in "unsubstituted alkynyl group" are replaced with a substituent. Specific examples of the "substituted alkynyl group" include groups in which one or more hydrogen atoms in the following "unsubstituted alkynyl group" (specific example group G5A) are replaced with a substituent.

・無置換のアルキニル基(具体例群G5A):
エチニル基
・Unsubstituted alkynyl group (specific example group G5A):
ethynyl group

・「置換もしくは無置換のシクロアルキル基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のシクロアルキル基」の具体例(具体例群G6)としては、以下の無置換のシクロアルキル基(具体例群G6A)、及び置換のシクロアルキル基(具体例群G6B)等が挙げられる。(ここで、無置換のシクロアルキル基とは「置換もしくは無置換のシクロアルキル基」が「無置換のシクロアルキル基」である場合を指し、置換のシクロアルキル基とは「置換もしくは無置換のシクロアルキル基」が「置換のシクロアルキル基」である場合を指す。)本明細書において、単に「シクロアルキル基」という場合は、「無置換のシクロアルキル基」と「置換のシクロアルキル基」の両方を含む。
 「置換のシクロアルキル基」は、「無置換のシクロアルキル基」における1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基を意味する。「置換のシクロアルキル基」の具体例としては、下記の「無置換のシクロアルキル基」(具体例群G6A)における1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基、及び置換のシクロアルキル基(具体例群G6B)の例等が挙げられる。なお、ここに列挙した「無置換のシクロアルキル基」の例や「置換のシクロアルキル基」の例は、一例に過ぎず、本明細書に記載の「置換のシクロアルキル基」には、具体例群G6Bの「置換のシクロアルキル基」におけるシクロアルキル基自体の炭素原子に結合する1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基、及び具体例群G6Bの「置換のシクロアルキル基」における置換基の水素原子がさらに置換基と置き換わった基も含まれる。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group”
Specific examples (specific example group G6) of the "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group" described in this specification include the following unsubstituted cycloalkyl groups (specific example group G6A) and substituted cycloalkyl groups ( Examples include specific example group G6B). (Here, the term "unsubstituted cycloalkyl group" refers to the case where "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group" is "unsubstituted cycloalkyl group", and the term "substituted cycloalkyl group" refers to "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group"). ("cycloalkyl group" refers to the case where "substituted cycloalkyl group" is used.) In this specification, when simply referring to "cycloalkyl group", it refers to "unsubstituted cycloalkyl group" and "substituted cycloalkyl group". including both.
"Substituted cycloalkyl group" means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms in "unsubstituted cycloalkyl group" are replaced with a substituent. Specific examples of the "substituted cycloalkyl group" include the following "unsubstituted cycloalkyl group" (specific example group G6A) in which one or more hydrogen atoms are replaced with a substituent, and a substituted cycloalkyl group. (Specific example group G6B) and the like can be mentioned. The examples of "unsubstituted cycloalkyl group" and "substituted cycloalkyl group" listed here are just examples, and the "substituted cycloalkyl group" described in this specification does not include specific examples. A group in which one or more hydrogen atoms bonded to the carbon atom of the cycloalkyl group itself is replaced with a substituent in the "substituted cycloalkyl group" of example group G6B, and in the "substituted cycloalkyl group" of specific example group G6B Also included are groups in which the hydrogen atom of a substituent is further replaced with a substituent.

・無置換のシクロアルキル基(具体例群G6A):
シクロプロピル基、
シクロブチル基、
シクロペンチル基、
シクロヘキシル基、
1-アダマンチル基、
2-アダマンチル基、
1-ノルボルニル基、及び
2-ノルボルニル基。
・Unsubstituted cycloalkyl group (specific example group G6A):
cyclopropyl group,
cyclobutyl group,
cyclopentyl group,
cyclohexyl group,
1-adamantyl group,
2-adamantyl group,
1-norbornyl group and 2-norbornyl group.

・置換のシクロアルキル基(具体例群G6B):
4-メチルシクロヘキシル基。
・Substituted cycloalkyl group (specific example group G6B):
4-methylcyclohexyl group.

・「-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基」
 本明細書に記載の-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基の具体例(具体例群G7)としては、
-Si(G1)(G1)(G1)、
-Si(G1)(G2)(G2)、
-Si(G1)(G1)(G2)、
-Si(G2)(G2)(G2)、
-Si(G3)(G3)(G3)、及び
-Si(G6)(G6)(G6)
が挙げられる。ここで、
 G1は、具体例群G1に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアリール基」である。
 G2は、具体例群G2に記載の「置換もしくは無置換の複素環基」である。
 G3は、具体例群G3に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」である。
 G6は、具体例群G6に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のシクロアルキル基」である。
 -Si(G1)(G1)(G1)における複数のG1は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なる。
 -Si(G1)(G2)(G2)における複数のG2は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なる。
 -Si(G1)(G1)(G2)における複数のG1は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なる。
 -Si(G2)(G2)(G2)における複数のG2は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なる。
 -Si(G3)(G3)(G3)における複数のG3は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なる。
 -Si(G6)(G6)(G6)における複数のG6は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なる。
・"Group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 )"
Specific examples of the group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ) described in this specification (specific example group G7) include:
-Si(G1)(G1)(G1),
-Si(G1)(G2)(G2),
-Si(G1)(G1)(G2),
-Si(G2)(G2)(G2),
-Si(G3)(G3)(G3), and -Si(G6)(G6)(G6)
can be mentioned. here,
G1 is a "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group" described in specific example group G1.
G2 is a "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group" described in specific example group G2.
G3 is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" described in specific example group G3.
G6 is a "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group" described in specific example group G6.
- A plurality of G1's in Si(G1) (G1) (G1) are the same or different from each other.
- A plurality of G2's in Si(G1)(G2)(G2) are mutually the same or different.
- A plurality of G1's in Si(G1) (G1) (G2) are mutually the same or different.
- A plurality of G2's in Si(G2) (G2) (G2) are mutually the same or different.
- A plurality of G3's in Si(G3) (G3) (G3) are mutually the same or different.
- A plurality of G6's in Si(G6) (G6) (G6) are mutually the same or different.

・「-O-(R904)で表される基」
 本明細書に記載の-O-(R904)で表される基の具体例(具体例群G8)としては、
-O(G1)、
-O(G2)、
-O(G3)、及び
-O(G6)
が挙げられる。
 ここで、
 G1は、具体例群G1に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアリール基」である。
 G2は、具体例群G2に記載の「置換もしくは無置換の複素環基」である。
 G3は、具体例群G3に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」である。
 G6は、具体例群G6に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のシクロアルキル基」である。
・"Group represented by -O-(R 904 )"
Specific examples of the group represented by -O-(R 904 ) described in this specification (specific example group G8) include:
-O(G1),
-O(G2),
-O (G3) and -O (G6)
can be mentioned.
here,
G1 is a "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group" described in specific example group G1.
G2 is a "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group" described in specific example group G2.
G3 is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" described in specific example group G3.
G6 is a "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group" described in specific example group G6.

・「-S-(R905)で表される基」
 本明細書に記載の-S-(R905)で表される基の具体例(具体例群G9)としては、
-S(G1)、
-S(G2)、
-S(G3)、及び
-S(G6)
が挙げられる。
 ここで、
 G1は、具体例群G1に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアリール基」である。
 G2は、具体例群G2に記載の「置換もしくは無置換の複素環基」である。
 G3は、具体例群G3に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」である。
 G6は、具体例群G6に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のシクロアルキル基」である。
・"Group represented by -S-(R 905 )"
Specific examples of the group represented by -S-(R 905 ) described in this specification (specific example group G9) include:
-S (G1),
-S (G2),
-S (G3) and -S (G6)
can be mentioned.
here,
G1 is a "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group" described in specific example group G1.
G2 is a "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group" described in specific example group G2.
G3 is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" described in specific example group G3.
G6 is a "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group" described in specific example group G6.

・「-N(R906)(R907)で表される基」
 本明細書に記載の-N(R906)(R907)で表される基の具体例(具体例群G10)としては、
-N(G1)(G1)、
-N(G2)(G2)、
-N(G1)(G2)、
-N(G3)(G3)、及び
-N(G6)(G6)
が挙げられる。
 ここで、
 G1は、具体例群G1に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアリール基」である。
 G2は、具体例群G2に記載の「置換もしくは無置換の複素環基」である。
 G3は、具体例群G3に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」である。
 G6は、具体例群G6に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のシクロアルキル基」である。
 -N(G1)(G1)における複数のG1は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なる。
 -N(G2)(G2)における複数のG2は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なる。
 -N(G3)(G3)における複数のG3は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なる。
 -N(G6)(G6)における複数のG6は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なる。
・"Group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 )"
Specific examples of the group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 ) described in this specification (specific example group G10) include:
-N(G1)(G1),
-N(G2)(G2),
-N (G1) (G2),
-N (G3) (G3), and -N (G6) (G6)
can be mentioned.
here,
G1 is a "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group" described in specific example group G1.
G2 is a "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group" described in specific example group G2.
G3 is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" described in specific example group G3.
G6 is a "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group" described in specific example group G6.
-N(G1) A plurality of G1's in (G1) are mutually the same or different.
-N(G2) A plurality of G2's in (G2) are the same or different.
-N(G3) A plurality of G3's in (G3) are mutually the same or different.
-N(G6) A plurality of G6's in (G6) are mutually the same or different.

・「ハロゲン原子」
 本明細書に記載の「ハロゲン原子」の具体例(具体例群G11)としては、フッ素原子、塩素原子、臭素原子、及びヨウ素原子等が挙げられる。
・"Halogen atom"
Specific examples of the "halogen atom" (specific example group G11) described in this specification include a fluorine atom, a chlorine atom, a bromine atom, an iodine atom, and the like.

・「置換もしくは無置換のフルオロアルキル基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のフルオロアルキル基」は、「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」におけるアルキル基を構成する炭素原子に結合している少なくとも1つの水素原子がフッ素原子と置き換わった基を意味し、「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」におけるアルキル基を構成する炭素原子に結合している全ての水素原子がフッ素原子で置き換わった基(パーフルオロ基)も含む。「無置換のフルオロアルキル基」の炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、1~50であり、好ましくは1~30であり、より好ましくは1~18である。「置換のフルオロアルキル基」は、「フルオロアルキル基」の1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基を意味する。なお、本明細書に記載の「置換のフルオロアルキル基」には、「置換のフルオロアルキル基」におけるアルキル鎖の炭素原子に結合する1つ以上の水素原子がさらに置換基と置き換わった基、及び「置換のフルオロアルキル基」における置換基の1つ以上の水素原子がさらに置換基と置き換わった基も含まれる。「無置換のフルオロアルキル基」の具体例としては、前記「アルキル基」(具体例群G3)における1つ以上の水素原子がフッ素原子と置き換わった基の例等が挙げられる。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted fluoroalkyl group”
The "substituted or unsubstituted fluoroalkyl group" described in this specification refers to a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" in which at least one hydrogen atom bonded to a carbon atom constituting the alkyl group is replaced with a fluorine atom. It also includes a group in which all hydrogen atoms bonded to the carbon atoms constituting the alkyl group in a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" are replaced with fluorine atoms (perfluoro group). The number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted fluoroalkyl group" is from 1 to 50, preferably from 1 to 30, and more preferably from 1 to 18, unless otherwise specified herein. "Substituted fluoroalkyl group" means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms of the "fluoroalkyl group" are replaced with a substituent. In addition, the "substituted fluoroalkyl group" described in this specification includes a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms bonded to the carbon atom of the alkyl chain in the "substituted fluoroalkyl group" is further replaced with a substituent, and Also included are groups in which one or more hydrogen atoms of a substituent in a "substituted fluoroalkyl group" are further replaced with a substituent. Specific examples of the "unsubstituted fluoroalkyl group" include a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms in the "alkyl group" (specific example group G3) are replaced with a fluorine atom.

・「置換もしくは無置換のハロアルキル基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のハロアルキル基」は、「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」におけるアルキル基を構成する炭素原子に結合している少なくとも1つの水素原子がハロゲン原子と置き換わった基を意味し、「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」におけるアルキル基を構成する炭素原子に結合している全ての水素原子がハロゲン原子で置き換わった基も含む。「無置換のハロアルキル基」の炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、1~50であり、好ましくは1~30であり、より好ましくは1~18である。「置換のハロアルキル基」は、「ハロアルキル基」の1つ以上の水素原子が置換基と置き換わった基を意味する。なお、本明細書に記載の「置換のハロアルキル基」には、「置換のハロアルキル基」におけるアルキル鎖の炭素原子に結合する1つ以上の水素原子がさらに置換基と置き換わった基、及び「置換のハロアルキル基」における置換基の1つ以上の水素原子がさらに置換基と置き換わった基も含まれる。「無置換のハロアルキル基」の具体例としては、前記「アルキル基」(具体例群G3)における1つ以上の水素原子がハロゲン原子と置き換わった基の例等が挙げられる。ハロアルキル基をハロゲン化アルキル基と称する場合がある。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted haloalkyl group”
The "substituted or unsubstituted haloalkyl group" described herein means that at least one hydrogen atom bonded to a carbon atom constituting the alkyl group in the "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" is replaced with a halogen atom. It means a group, and also includes a group in which all hydrogen atoms bonded to carbon atoms constituting an alkyl group in a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" are replaced with halogen atoms. Unless otherwise specified herein, the number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted haloalkyl group" is from 1 to 50, preferably from 1 to 30, and more preferably from 1 to 18. "Substituted haloalkyl group" means a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms of the "haloalkyl group" are replaced with a substituent. In addition, the "substituted haloalkyl group" described in this specification includes a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms bonded to the carbon atom of the alkyl chain in the "substituted haloalkyl group" is further replaced with a substituent; Also included are groups in which one or more hydrogen atoms of a substituent in the "haloalkyl group" are further replaced with a substituent. Specific examples of the "unsubstituted haloalkyl group" include a group in which one or more hydrogen atoms in the "alkyl group" (specific example group G3) are replaced with a halogen atom. A haloalkyl group is sometimes referred to as a halogenated alkyl group.

・「置換もしくは無置換のアルコキシ基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルコキシ基」の具体例としては、-O(G3)で表される基であり、ここで、G3は、具体例群G3に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」である。「無置換のアルコキシ基」の炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、1~50であり、好ましくは1~30であり、より好ましくは1~18である。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted alkoxy group”
A specific example of the "substituted or unsubstituted alkoxy group" described in this specification is a group represented by -O(G3), where G3 is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkoxy group" described in specific example group G3. "unsubstituted alkyl group". The number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted alkoxy group" is from 1 to 50, preferably from 1 to 30, and more preferably from 1 to 18, unless otherwise specified herein.

・「置換もしくは無置換のアルキルチオ基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルキルチオ基」の具体例としては、-S(G3)で表される基であり、ここで、G3は、具体例群G3に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」である。「無置換のアルキルチオ基」の炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、1~50であり、好ましくは1~30であり、より好ましくは1~18である。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted alkylthio group”
A specific example of the "substituted or unsubstituted alkylthio group" described in this specification is a group represented by -S(G3), where G3 is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkylthio group" described in specific example group G3. "unsubstituted alkyl group". The number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted alkylthio group" is from 1 to 50, preferably from 1 to 30, and more preferably from 1 to 18, unless otherwise specified herein.

・「置換もしくは無置換のアリールオキシ基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアリールオキシ基」の具体例としては、-O(G1)で表される基であり、ここで、G1は、具体例群G1に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアリール基」である。「無置換のアリールオキシ基」の環形成炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、6~50であり、好ましくは6~30であり、より好ましくは6~18である。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted aryloxy group”
A specific example of the "substituted or unsubstituted aryloxy group" described in this specification is a group represented by -O(G1), where G1 is a "substituted or unsubstituted aryloxy group" described in specific example group G1. or an unsubstituted aryl group. The number of ring carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted aryloxy group" is from 6 to 50, preferably from 6 to 30, and more preferably from 6 to 18, unless otherwise specified herein.

・「置換もしくは無置換のアリールチオ基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアリールチオ基」の具体例としては、-S(G1)で表される基であり、ここで、G1は、具体例群G1に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアリール基」である。「無置換のアリールチオ基」の環形成炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、6~50であり、好ましくは6~30であり、より好ましくは6~18である。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted arylthio group”
A specific example of the "substituted or unsubstituted arylthio group" described in this specification is a group represented by -S(G1), where G1 is the "substituted or unsubstituted arylthio group" described in the specific example group G1. "Unsubstituted aryl group". The number of ring carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted arylthio group" is from 6 to 50, preferably from 6 to 30, and more preferably from 6 to 18, unless otherwise specified herein.

・「置換もしくは無置換のトリアルキルシリル基」
 本明細書に記載の「トリアルキルシリル基」の具体例としては、-Si(G3)(G3)(G3)で表される基であり、ここで、G3は、具体例群G3に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」である。-Si(G3)(G3)(G3)における複数のG3は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なる。「トリアルキルシリル基」の各アルキル基の炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、1~50であり、好ましくは1~20であり、より好ましくは1~6である。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted trialkylsilyl group”
A specific example of the "trialkylsilyl group" described in this specification is a group represented by -Si(G3)(G3)(G3), where G3 is a group described in specific example group G3. It is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group." - A plurality of G3's in Si(G3) (G3) (G3) are mutually the same or different. The number of carbon atoms in each alkyl group of the "trialkylsilyl group" is from 1 to 50, preferably from 1 to 20, and more preferably from 1 to 6, unless otherwise specified herein.

・「置換もしくは無置換のアラルキル基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアラルキル基」の具体例としては、-(G3)-(G1)で表される基であり、ここで、G3は、具体例群G3に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」であり、G1は、具体例群G1に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアリール基」である。従って、「アラルキル基」は、「アルキル基」の水素原子が置換基としての「アリール基」と置き換わった基であり、「置換のアルキル基」の一態様である。「無置換のアラルキル基」は、「無置換のアリール基」が置換した「無置換のアルキル基」であり、「無置換のアラルキル基」の炭素数は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、7~50であり、好ましくは7~30であり、より好ましくは7~18である。
 「置換もしくは無置換のアラルキル基」の具体例としては、ベンジル基、1-フェニルエチル基、2-フェニルエチル基、1-フェニルイソプロピル基、2-フェニルイソプロピル基、フェニル-t-ブチル基、α-ナフチルメチル基、1-α-ナフチルエチル基、2-α-ナフチルエチル基、1-α-ナフチルイソプロピル基、2-α-ナフチルイソプロピル基、β-ナフチルメチル基、1-β-ナフチルエチル基、2-β-ナフチルエチル基、1-β-ナフチルイソプロピル基、及び2-β-ナフチルイソプロピル基等が挙げられる。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted aralkyl group”
A specific example of the "substituted or unsubstituted aralkyl group" described in this specification is a group represented by -(G3)-(G1), where G3 is a group described in specific example group G3. It is a "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group", and G1 is a "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group" described in the specific example group G1. Therefore, an "aralkyl group" is a group in which the hydrogen atom of an "alkyl group" is replaced with an "aryl group" as a substituent, and is one embodiment of a "substituted alkyl group." An "unsubstituted aralkyl group" is an "unsubstituted alkyl group" substituted with an "unsubstituted aryl group", and the number of carbon atoms in the "unsubstituted aralkyl group" is determined unless otherwise specified herein. , 7 to 50, preferably 7 to 30, more preferably 7 to 18.
Specific examples of "substituted or unsubstituted aralkyl groups" include benzyl group, 1-phenylethyl group, 2-phenylethyl group, 1-phenylisopropyl group, 2-phenylisopropyl group, phenyl-t-butyl group, α - Naphthylmethyl group, 1-α-naphthylethyl group, 2-α-naphthylethyl group, 1-α-naphthylisopropyl group, 2-α-naphthylisopropyl group, β-naphthylmethyl group, 1-β-naphthylethyl group , 2-β-naphthylethyl group, 1-β-naphthylisopropyl group, and 2-β-naphthylisopropyl group.

 本明細書に記載の置換もしくは無置換のアリール基は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、好ましくはフェニル基、p-ビフェニル基、m-ビフェニル基、o-ビフェニル基、p-ターフェニル-4-イル基、p-ターフェニル-3-イル基、p-ターフェニル-2-イル基、m-ターフェニル-4-イル基、m-ターフェニル-3-イル基、m-ターフェニル-2-イル基、o-ターフェニル-4-イル基、o-ターフェニル-3-イル基、o-ターフェニル-2-イル基、1-ナフチル基、2-ナフチル基、アントリル基、フェナントリル基、ピレニル基、クリセニル基、トリフェニレニル基、フルオレニル基、9,9’-スピロビフルオレニル基、9,9-ジメチルフルオレニル基、及び9,9-ジフェニルフルオレニル基等である。 The substituted or unsubstituted aryl group described herein is preferably a phenyl group, p-biphenyl group, m-biphenyl group, o-biphenyl group, p-terphenyl group, unless otherwise specified herein. 4-yl group, p-terphenyl-3-yl group, p-terphenyl-2-yl group, m-terphenyl-4-yl group, m-terphenyl-3-yl group, m-terphenyl- 2-yl group, o-terphenyl-4-yl group, o-terphenyl-3-yl group, o-terphenyl-2-yl group, 1-naphthyl group, 2-naphthyl group, anthryl group, phenanthryl group , pyrenyl group, chrysenyl group, triphenylenyl group, fluorenyl group, 9,9'-spirobifluorenyl group, 9,9-dimethylfluorenyl group, and 9,9-diphenylfluorenyl group.

 本明細書に記載の置換もしくは無置換の複素環基は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、好ましくはピリジル基、ピリミジニル基、トリアジニル基、キノリル基、イソキノリル基、キナゾリニル基、ベンゾイミダゾリル基、フェナントロリニル基、カルバゾリル基(1-カルバゾリル基、2-カルバゾリル基、3-カルバゾリル基、4-カルバゾリル基、又は9-カルバゾリル基)、ベンゾカルバゾリル基、アザカルバゾリル基、ジアザカルバゾリル基、ジベンゾフラニル基、ナフトベンゾフラニル基、アザジベンゾフラニル基、ジアザジベンゾフラニル基、ジベンゾチオフェニル基、ナフトベンゾチオフェニル基、アザジベンゾチオフェニル基、ジアザジベンゾチオフェニル基、(9-フェニル)カルバゾリル基((9-フェニル)カルバゾール-1-イル基、(9-フェニル)カルバゾール-2-イル基、(9-フェニル)カルバゾール-3-イル基、又は(9-フェニル)カルバゾール-4-イル基)、(9-ビフェニリル)カルバゾリル基、(9-フェニル)フェニルカルバゾリル基、ジフェニルカルバゾール-9-イル基、フェニルカルバゾール-9-イル基、フェニルトリアジニル基、ビフェニリルトリアジニル基、ジフェニルトリアジニル基、フェニルジベンゾフラニル基、及びフェニルジベンゾチオフェニル基等である。 The substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group described herein is preferably a pyridyl group, a pyrimidinyl group, a triazinyl group, a quinolyl group, an isoquinolyl group, a quinazolinyl group, a benzimidazolyl group, or a phenol group, unless otherwise specified herein. Nanthrolinyl group, carbazolyl group (1-carbazolyl group, 2-carbazolyl group, 3-carbazolyl group, 4-carbazolyl group, or 9-carbazolyl group), benzocarbazolyl group, azacarbazolyl group, diazacarbazolyl group , dibenzofuranyl group, naphthobenzofuranyl group, azadibenzofuranyl group, diazadibenzofuranyl group, dibenzothiophenyl group, naphthobenzothiophenyl group, azadibenzothiophenyl group, diazadibenzothiophenyl group, ( 9-phenyl)carbazolyl group ((9-phenyl)carbazol-1-yl group, (9-phenyl)carbazol-2-yl group, (9-phenyl)carbazol-3-yl group, or (9-phenyl)carbazole -4-yl group), (9-biphenylyl)carbazolyl group, (9-phenyl)phenylcarbazolyl group, diphenylcarbazol-9-yl group, phenylcarbazol-9-yl group, phenyltriazinyl group, biphenylyl group These include riazinyl group, diphenyltriazinyl group, phenyldibenzofuranyl group, and phenyldibenzothiophenyl group.

 本明細書において、カルバゾリル基は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、具体的には以下のいずれかの基である。 In this specification, the carbazolyl group is specifically any of the following groups unless otherwise specified in the specification.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000028
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000028

 本明細書において、(9-フェニル)カルバゾリル基は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、具体的には以下のいずれかの基である。 In this specification, the (9-phenyl)carbazolyl group is specifically any of the following groups, unless otherwise stated in the specification.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000029
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000029

 前記一般式(TEMP-Cz1)~(TEMP-Cz9)中、*は、結合位置を表す。 In the general formulas (TEMP-Cz1) to (TEMP-Cz9), * represents the bonding position.

 本明細書において、ジベンゾフラニル基、及びジベンゾチオフェニル基は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、具体的には以下のいずれかの基である。 In this specification, the dibenzofuranyl group and dibenzothiophenyl group are specifically any of the following groups unless otherwise specified in the specification.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000030
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000030

 前記一般式(TEMP-34)~(TEMP-41)中、*は、結合位置を表す。 In the general formulas (TEMP-34) to (TEMP-41), * represents the bonding position.

 本明細書に記載の置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、好ましくはメチル基、エチル基、プロピル基、イソプロピル基、n-ブチル基、イソブチル基、及びt-ブチル基等である。 Unless otherwise specified herein, the substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group described herein is preferably a methyl group, ethyl group, propyl group, isopropyl group, n-butyl group, isobutyl group, and t- Butyl group, etc.

・「置換もしくは無置換のアリーレン基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアリーレン基」は、別途記載のない限り、上記「置換もしくは無置換のアリール基」からアリール環上の1つの水素原子を除くことにより誘導される2価の基である。「置換もしくは無置換のアリーレン基」の具体例(具体例群G12)としては、具体例群G1に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアリール基」からアリール環上の1つの水素原子を除くことにより誘導される2価の基等が挙げられる。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted arylene group”
Unless otherwise specified, the "substituted or unsubstituted arylene group" described in this specification refers to 2 derived from the above "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group" by removing one hydrogen atom on the aryl ring. It is the basis of valence. As a specific example of the "substituted or unsubstituted arylene group" (specific example group G12), by removing one hydrogen atom on the aryl ring from the "substituted or unsubstituted aryl group" described in specific example group G1, Examples include divalent groups derived from the derivatives.

・「置換もしくは無置換の2価の複素環基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換の2価の複素環基」は、別途記載のない限り、上記「置換もしくは無置換の複素環基」から複素環上の1つの水素原子を除くことにより誘導される2価の基である。「置換もしくは無置換の2価の複素環基」の具体例(具体例群G13)としては、具体例群G2に記載の「置換もしくは無置換の複素環基」から複素環上の1つの水素原子を除くことにより誘導される2価の基等が挙げられる。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted divalent heterocyclic group”
Unless otherwise specified, the "substituted or unsubstituted divalent heterocyclic group" described herein refers to the "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group" described above in which one hydrogen atom on the heterocycle is removed. It is a divalent group derived from Specific examples of the "substituted or unsubstituted divalent heterocyclic group" (specific example group G13) include one hydrogen on the heterocycle from the "substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group" described in specific example group G2. Examples include divalent groups derived by removing atoms.

・「置換もしくは無置換のアルキレン基」
 本明細書に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルキレン基」は、別途記載のない限り、上記「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」からアルキル鎖上の1つの水素原子を除くことにより誘導される2価の基である。「置換もしくは無置換のアルキレン基」の具体例(具体例群G14)としては、具体例群G3に記載の「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」からアルキル鎖上の1つの水素原子を除くことにより誘導される2価の基等が挙げられる。
・“Substituted or unsubstituted alkylene group”
Unless otherwise specified, the "substituted or unsubstituted alkylene group" described in this specification refers to 2 derived from the above "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" by removing one hydrogen atom on the alkyl chain. It is the basis of valence. As a specific example of a "substituted or unsubstituted alkylene group" (specific example group G14), one hydrogen atom on the alkyl chain is removed from the "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" described in specific example group G3. Examples include divalent groups derived from the derivatives.

 本明細書に記載の置換もしくは無置換のアリーレン基は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、好ましくは下記一般式(TEMP-42)~(TEMP-68)のいずれかの基である。 Unless otherwise stated herein, the substituted or unsubstituted arylene group described herein is preferably a group represented by any of the following general formulas (TEMP-42) to (TEMP-68).

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000031
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000031

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000032
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000032

 前記一般式(TEMP-42)~(TEMP-52)中、Q~Q10は、それぞれ独立に、水素原子、又は置換基である。
 前記一般式(TEMP-42)~(TEMP-52)中、*は、結合位置を表す。
In the general formulas (TEMP-42) to (TEMP-52), Q 1 to Q 10 are each independently a hydrogen atom or a substituent.
In the general formulas (TEMP-42) to (TEMP-52), * represents the bonding position.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000033
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000033

 前記一般式(TEMP-53)~(TEMP-62)中、Q~Q10は、それぞれ独立に、水素原子、又は置換基である。
 式Q及びQ10は、単結合を介して互いに結合して環を形成してもよい。
 前記一般式(TEMP-53)~(TEMP-62)中、*は、結合位置を表す。
In the general formulas (TEMP-53) to (TEMP-62), Q 1 to Q 10 are each independently a hydrogen atom or a substituent.
Formulas Q 9 and Q 10 may be bonded to each other via a single bond to form a ring.
In the general formulas (TEMP-53) to (TEMP-62), * represents the bonding position.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000034
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000034

 前記一般式(TEMP-63)~(TEMP-68)中、Q~Qは、それぞれ独立に、水素原子、又は置換基である。
 前記一般式(TEMP-63)~(TEMP-68)中、*は、結合位置を表す。
In the general formulas (TEMP-63) to (TEMP-68), Q 1 to Q 8 are each independently a hydrogen atom or a substituent.
In the general formulas (TEMP-63) to (TEMP-68), * represents the bonding position.

 本明細書に記載の置換もしくは無置換の2価の複素環基は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、好ましくは下記一般式(TEMP-69)~(TEMP-102)のいずれかの基である。 The substituted or unsubstituted divalent heterocyclic group described herein is preferably one of the following general formulas (TEMP-69) to (TEMP-102), unless otherwise specified herein. It is.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000035
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000035

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000036
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000036

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000037
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000037

 前記一般式(TEMP-69)~(TEMP-82)中、Q~Qは、それぞれ独立に、水素原子、又は置換基である。 In the general formulas (TEMP-69) to (TEMP-82), Q 1 to Q 9 are each independently a hydrogen atom or a substituent.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000038
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000038

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000039
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000039

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000040
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000040

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000041
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000041

 前記一般式(TEMP-83)~(TEMP-102)中、Q~Qは、それぞれ独立に、水素原子、又は置換基である。 In the general formulas (TEMP-83) to (TEMP-102), Q 1 to Q 8 are each independently a hydrogen atom or a substituent.

 以上が、「本明細書に記載の置換基」についての説明である。 The above is an explanation of the "substituents described in this specification."

・「結合して環を形成する場合」
 本明細書において、「隣接する2つ以上からなる組の1組以上が、互いに結合して、置換もしくは無置換の単環を形成するか、互いに結合して、置換もしくは無置換の縮合環を形成するか、又は互いに結合せず」という場合は、「隣接する2つ以上からなる組の1組以上が、互いに結合して、置換もしくは無置換の単環を形成する」場合と、「隣接する2つ以上からなる組の1組以上が、互いに結合して、置換もしくは無置換の縮合環を形成する」場合と、「隣接する2つ以上からなる組の1組以上が、互いに結合しない」場合と、を意味する。
 本明細書における、「隣接する2つ以上からなる組の1組以上が、互いに結合して、置換もしくは無置換の単環を形成する」場合、及び「隣接する2つ以上からなる組の1組以上が、互いに結合して、置換もしくは無置換の縮合環を形成する」場合(以下、これらの場合をまとめて「結合して環を形成する場合」と称する場合がある。)について、以下、説明する。母骨格がアントラセン環である下記一般式(TEMP-103)で表されるアントラセン化合物の場合を例として説明する。
・"When combining to form a ring"
In the present specification, "one or more pairs of two or more adjacent groups are bonded to each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted monocycle, or bonded to each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted fused ring." or do not bond to each other'' means ``one or more pairs of two or more adjacent groups bond to each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted monocycle''; One or more pairs of two or more adjacent groups bond to each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted condensed ring, and one or more pairs of two or more adjacent groups do not bond to each other. ” means if and.
In this specification, when "one or more sets of two or more adjacent rings are bonded to each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted monocycle" and "one or more sets of two or more adjacent rings are combined with each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted monocycle" Regarding the case where "a pair or more are combined with each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted condensed ring" (hereinafter, these cases may be collectively referred to as "a case where they are combined to form a ring"), the following ,explain. The case of an anthracene compound represented by the following general formula (TEMP-103) whose parent skeleton is an anthracene ring will be explained as an example.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000042
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000042

 例えば、R921~R930のうちの「隣接する2つ以上からなる組の1組以上が、互いに結合して、環を形成する」場合において、1組となる隣接する2つからなる組とは、R921とR922との組、R922とR923との組、R923とR924との組、R924とR930との組、R930とR925との組、R925とR926との組、R926とR927との組、R927とR928との組、R928とR929との組、並びにR929とR921との組である。 For example, in the case where "one or more of the sets of two or more adjacent R 921 to R 930 combine with each other to form a ring," the set of two or more adjacent R 921 to R 930 is one set. is a set of R 921 and R 922 , a set of R 922 and R 923 , a set of R 923 and R 924 , a set of R 924 and R 930 , a set of R 930 and R 925 , a set of R 925 and A set of R 926 , a set of R 926 and R 927 , a set of R 927 and R 928 , a set of R 928 and R 929 , and a set of R 929 and R 921 .

 上記「1組以上」とは、上記隣接する2つ以上からなる組の2組以上が同時に環を形成してもよいことを意味する。例えば、R921とR922とが互いに結合して環Qを形成し、同時にR925とR926とが互いに結合して環Qを形成した場合は、前記一般式(TEMP-103)で表されるアントラセン化合物は、下記一般式(TEMP-104)で表される。 The above-mentioned "one or more sets" means that two or more sets of the above-mentioned two or more adjacent sets may form a ring at the same time. For example, when R 921 and R 922 combine with each other to form ring Q A , and at the same time R 925 and R 926 combine with each other to form ring Q B , the above general formula (TEMP-103) The anthracene compound represented is represented by the following general formula (TEMP-104).

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000043
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000043

 「隣接する2つ以上からなる組」が環を形成する場合とは、前述の例のように隣接する「2つ」からなる組が結合する場合だけではなく、隣接する「3つ以上」からなる組が結合する場合も含む。例えば、R921とR922とが互いに結合して環Qを形成し、且つ、R922とR923とが互いに結合して環Qを形成し、互いに隣接する3つ(R921、R922及びR923)からなる組が互いに結合して環を形成して、アントラセン母骨格に縮合する場合を意味し、この場合、前記一般式(TEMP-103)で表されるアントラセン化合物は、下記一般式(TEMP-105)で表される。下記一般式(TEMP-105)において、環Q及び環Qは、R922を共有する。 The case where "a set of two or more adjacent items" forms a ring is not only the case where a set of "two" adjacent items are combined as in the example above, but also the case where a set of "three or more adjacent items" form a ring. This also includes the case where two sets are combined. For example, R 921 and R 922 combine with each other to form a ring Q A , and R 922 and R 923 combine with each other to form a ring Q C , and the three adjacent to each other (R 921 , R 922 and R 923 ) combine with each other to form a ring and are condensed to the anthracene mother skeleton. In this case, the anthracene compound represented by the general formula (TEMP-103) is as follows: It is represented by the general formula (TEMP-105). In the following general formula (TEMP-105), ring Q A and ring Q C share R 922 .

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000044
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000044

 形成される「単環」、又は「縮合環」は、形成された環のみの構造として、飽和の環であっても不飽和の環であってもよい。「隣接する2つからなる組の1組」が「単環」、又は「縮合環」を形成する場合であっても、当該「単環」、又は「縮合環」は、飽和の環、又は不飽和の環を形成することができる。例えば、前記一般式(TEMP-104)において形成された環Q及び環Qは、それぞれ、「単環」又は「縮合環」である。また、前記一般式(TEMP-105)において形成された環Q、及び環Qは、「縮合環」である。前記一般式(TEMP-105)の環Qと環Qとは、環Qと環Qとが縮合することによって縮合環となっている。前記一般式(TEMP-104)の環Qがベンゼン環であれば、環Qは、単環である。前記一般式(TEMP-104)の環Qがナフタレン環であれば、環Qは、縮合環である。 The "single ring" or "fused ring" that is formed may be a saturated ring or an unsaturated ring as a structure consisting only of the formed ring. Even if “one set of two adjacent rings” forms a “monocycle” or “fused ring”, the “single ring” or “fused ring” is a saturated ring, or Can form unsaturated rings. For example, ring Q A and ring Q B formed in the general formula (TEMP-104) are each a "monocyclic ring" or a "fused ring." Furthermore, the ring Q A and the ring Q C formed in the general formula (TEMP-105) are "fused rings". Ring Q A and ring Q C in the general formula (TEMP-105) are a fused ring by condensation of ring Q A and ring Q C. When ring Q A in the general formula (TEMP-104) is a benzene ring, ring Q A is a monocyclic ring. When ring Q A in the general formula (TEMP-104) is a naphthalene ring, ring Q A is a fused ring.

 「不飽和の環」とは、芳香族炭化水素環、又は芳香族複素環を意味する。「飽和の環」とは、脂肪族炭化水素環、又は非芳香族複素環を意味する。
 芳香族炭化水素環の具体例としては、具体例群G1において具体例として挙げられた基が水素原子によって終端された構造が挙げられる。
 芳香族複素環の具体例としては、具体例群G2において具体例として挙げられた芳香族複素環基が水素原子によって終端された構造が挙げられる。
 脂肪族炭化水素環の具体例としては、具体例群G6において具体例として挙げられた基が水素原子によって終端された構造が挙げられる。
 「環を形成する」とは、母骨格の複数の原子のみ、あるいは母骨格の複数の原子とさらに1以上の任意の元素で環を形成することを意味する。例えば、前記一般式(TEMP-104)に示す、R921とR922とが互いに結合して形成された環Qは、R921が結合するアントラセン骨格の炭素原子と、R922が結合するアントラセン骨格の炭素原子と、1以上の任意の元素とで形成する環を意味する。具体例としては、R921とR922とで環Qを形成する場合において、R921が結合するアントラセン骨格の炭素原子と、R922とが結合するアントラセン骨格の炭素原子と、4つの炭素原子とで単環の不飽和の環を形成する場合、R921とR922とで形成する環は、ベンゼン環である。
"Unsaturated ring" means an aromatic hydrocarbon ring or an aromatic heterocycle. "Saturated ring" means an aliphatic hydrocarbon ring or a non-aromatic heterocycle.
Specific examples of the aromatic hydrocarbon ring include structures in which the groups listed as specific examples in specific example group G1 are terminated with hydrogen atoms.
Specific examples of the aromatic heterocycle include structures in which the aromatic heterocyclic group listed as a specific example in specific example group G2 is terminated with a hydrogen atom.
Specific examples of the aliphatic hydrocarbon ring include structures in which the groups listed as specific examples in specific example group G6 are terminated with hydrogen atoms.
"Form a ring" means to form a ring with only a plurality of atoms of a parent skeleton, or with a plurality of atoms of a parent skeleton and one or more arbitrary elements. For example, the ring Q A shown in the general formula (TEMP-104) formed by R 921 and R 922 bonding to each other is a carbon atom of the anthracene skeleton to which R 921 is bonded, and an anthracene bond to which R 922 is bonded. It means a ring formed by a carbon atom in the skeleton and one or more arbitrary elements. As a specific example, when R 921 and R 922 form a ring Q A , the carbon atom of the anthracene skeleton to which R 921 is bonded, the carbon atom of the anthracene skeleton to which R 922 is bonded, and four carbon atoms. When R 921 and R 922 form a monocyclic unsaturated ring, the ring formed by R 921 and R 922 is a benzene ring.

 ここで、「任意の元素」は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、好ましくは、炭素元素、窒素元素、酸素元素、及び硫黄元素からなる群から選択される少なくとも1種の元素である。任意の元素において(例えば、炭素元素、又は窒素元素の場合)、環を形成しない結合は、水素原子等で終端されてもよいし、後述する「任意の置換基」で置換されてもよい。炭素元素以外の任意の元素を含む場合、形成される環は複素環である。
 単環または縮合環を構成する「1以上の任意の元素」は、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、好ましくは2個以上15個以下であり、より好ましくは3個以上12個以下であり、さらに好ましくは3個以上5個以下である。
 本明細書に別途記載のない限り、「単環」、及び「縮合環」のうち、好ましくは「単環」である。
 本明細書に別途記載のない限り、「飽和の環」、及び「不飽和の環」のうち、好ましくは「不飽和の環」である。
 本明細書に別途記載のない限り、「単環」は、好ましくはベンゼン環である。
 本明細書に別途記載のない限り、「不飽和の環」は、好ましくはベンゼン環である。
 「隣接する2つ以上からなる組の1組以上」が、「互いに結合して、置換もしくは無置換の単環を形成する」場合、又は「互いに結合して、置換もしくは無置換の縮合環を形成する」場合、本明細書に別途記載のない限り、好ましくは、隣接する2つ以上からなる組の1組以上が、互いに結合して、母骨格の複数の原子と、1個以上15個以下の炭素元素、窒素元素、酸素元素、及び硫黄元素からなる群から選択される少なくとも1種の元素とからなる置換もしくは無置換の「不飽和の環」を形成する。
Here, the "arbitrary element" is preferably at least one element selected from the group consisting of carbon element, nitrogen element, oxygen element, and sulfur element, unless otherwise specified in this specification. In any element (for example, in the case of a carbon element or a nitrogen element), a bond that does not form a ring may be terminated with a hydrogen atom or the like, or may be substituted with an "arbitrary substituent" described below. When any element other than carbon is included, the ring formed is a heterocycle.
Unless otherwise stated herein, the number of "one or more arbitrary elements" constituting a monocyclic or condensed ring is preferably 2 to 15, more preferably 3 to 12. , more preferably 3 or more and 5 or less.
Unless otherwise specified herein, "monocycle" is preferred among "monocycle" and "fused ring."
Unless otherwise specified herein, the "unsaturated ring" is preferred between the "saturated ring" and the "unsaturated ring".
Unless otherwise stated herein, a "monocycle" is preferably a benzene ring.
Unless otherwise stated herein, an "unsaturated ring" is preferably a benzene ring.
When "one or more pairs of two or more adjacent groups" are "bonded with each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted monocycle" or "bonded with each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted fused ring" In the case of "forming", unless otherwise specified herein, preferably, one or more of the pairs of two or more adjacent atoms are bonded to each other to form a bond with a plurality of atoms of the parent skeleton and one or more of the 15 or more atoms. A substituted or unsubstituted "unsaturated ring" is formed with at least one element selected from the group consisting of the following carbon elements, nitrogen elements, oxygen elements, and sulfur elements.

 上記の「単環」、又は「縮合環」が置換基を有する場合の置換基は、例えば後述する「任意の置換基」である。上記の「単環」、又は「縮合環」が置換基を有する場合の置換基の具体例は、上述した「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項で説明した置換基である。
 上記の「飽和の環」、又は「不飽和の環」が置換基を有する場合の置換基は、例えば後述する「任意の置換基」である。上記の「単環」、又は「縮合環」が置換基を有する場合の置換基の具体例は、上述した「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項で説明した置換基である。
 以上が、「隣接する2つ以上からなる組の1組以上が、互いに結合して、置換もしくは無置換の単環を形成する」場合、及び「隣接する2つ以上からなる組の1組以上が、互いに結合して、置換もしくは無置換の縮合環を形成する」場合(「結合して環を形成する場合」)についての説明である。
When the above-mentioned "single ring" or "fused ring" has a substituent, the substituent is, for example, the "arbitrary substituent" described below. Specific examples of the substituent in the case where the above-mentioned "single ring" or "fused ring" has a substituent are the substituents described in the section of "Substituent described herein" above.
When the above-mentioned "saturated ring" or "unsaturated ring" has a substituent, the substituent is, for example, the "arbitrary substituent" described below. Specific examples of the substituent in the case where the above-mentioned "single ring" or "fused ring" has a substituent are the substituents described in the section of "Substituent described herein" above.
The above applies to cases in which "one or more sets of two or more adjacent rings combine with each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted monocycle," and "one or more sets of two or more adjacent rings." are combined with each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted condensed ring ("the case where they are combined to form a ring").

・「置換もしくは無置換の」という場合の置換基
 本明細書における一実施形態においては、前記「置換もしくは無置換の」という場合の置換基(本明細書において、「任意の置換基」と呼ぶことがある。)は、例えば、
無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、
無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、
無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)、
-O-(R904)、
-S-(R905)、
-N(R906)(R907)、
ハロゲン原子、シアノ基、ニトロ基、
無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、及び
無置換の環形成原子数5~50の複素環基
からなる群から選択される基等であり、
 ここで、R901~R907は、それぞれ独立に、
水素原子、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、又は
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50の複素環基である。
 R901が2個以上存在する場合、2個以上のR901は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なり、
 R902が2個以上存在する場合、2個以上のR902は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なり、
 R903が2個以上存在する場合、2個以上のR903は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なり、
 R904が2個以上存在する場合、2個以上のR904は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なり、
 R905が2個以上存在する場合、2個以上のR905は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なり、
 R906が2個以上存在する場合、2個以上のR906は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なり、
 R907が2個以上存在する場合、2個以上のR907は、互いに同一であるか又は異なる。
・Substituent in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted" In one embodiment in this specification, the substituent in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted" (herein referred to as "arbitrary substituent") For example,
unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
-Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ),
-O-(R 904 ),
-S- (R 905 ),
-N(R 906 )(R 907 ),
Halogen atom, cyano group, nitro group,
A group selected from the group consisting of an unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, and an unsubstituted heterocyclic group having 5 to 50 ring atoms,
Here, R 901 to R 907 are each independently,
hydrogen atom,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
A substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted heterocyclic group having 5 to 50 ring atoms.
When two or more R 901s exist, the two or more R 901s are the same or different,
When two or more R 902s exist, the two or more R 902s are the same or different,
When two or more R 903s exist, the two or more R 903s are the same or different,
When two or more R 904s exist, the two or more R 904s are the same or different,
When two or more R 905s exist, the two or more R 905s are the same or different,
When two or more R 906s exist, the two or more R 906s are the same or different,
When two or more R 907s exist, the two or more R 907s are the same or different.

 一実施形態においては、前記「置換もしくは無置換の」という場合の置換基は、
炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、及び
環形成原子数5~50の複素環基
からなる群から選択される基である。
In one embodiment, the substituent in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted" is
an alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
A group selected from the group consisting of an aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms and a heterocyclic group having 5 to 50 ring atoms.

 一実施形態においては、前記「置換もしくは無置換の」という場合の置換基は、
炭素数1~18のアルキル基、
環形成炭素数6~18のアリール基、及び
環形成原子数5~18の複素環基
からなる群から選択される基である。
In one embodiment, the substituent in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted" is
an alkyl group having 1 to 18 carbon atoms,
A group selected from the group consisting of an aryl group having 6 to 18 ring carbon atoms and a heterocyclic group having 5 to 18 ring atoms.

 上記任意の置換基の各基の具体例は、上述した「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項で説明した置換基の具体例である。 Specific examples of each group of the above-mentioned arbitrary substituents are the specific examples of the substituents described in the section of "Substituents described in this specification" above.

 本明細書において別途記載のない限り、隣接する任意の置換基同士で、「飽和の環」、又は「不飽和の環」を形成してもよく、好ましくは、置換もしくは無置換の飽和の5員環、置換もしくは無置換の飽和の6員環、置換もしくは無置換の不飽和の5員環、又は置換もしくは無置換の不飽和の6員環を形成し、より好ましくは、ベンゼン環を形成する。
 本明細書において別途記載のない限り、任意の置換基は、さらに置換基を有してもよい。任意の置換基がさらに有する置換基としては、上記任意の置換基と同様である。
Unless otherwise specified in this specification, any adjacent substituents may form a "saturated ring" or "unsaturated ring", preferably a substituted or unsubstituted saturated ring. Forms a membered ring, a substituted or unsubstituted saturated 6-membered ring, a substituted or unsubstituted unsaturated 5-membered ring, or a substituted or unsubstituted unsaturated 6-membered ring, more preferably a benzene ring do.
Unless otherwise specified herein, any substituent may further have a substituent. The substituent which the arbitrary substituent further has is the same as the above arbitrary substituent.

 本明細書において、「AA~BB」を用いて表される数値範囲は、「AA~BB」の前に記載される数値AAを下限値とし、「AA~BB」の後に記載される数値BBを上限値として含む範囲を意味する。 In this specification, the numerical range expressed using "AA-BB" has the numerical value AA written before "AA-BB" as the lower limit, and the numerical value BB written after "AA-BB". means a range that includes as an upper limit value.

 以下、本発明の化合物を説明する。
 本発明の一態様に係る化合物(1)は、下記式(1)で表される。
 以下、式(1)及び式(1)に含まれる各式中の記号を説明する。なお、特に断らない限り、同じ記号は同じ意味を有する。
The compounds of the present invention will be explained below.
Compound (1) according to one embodiment of the present invention is represented by the following formula (1).
Hereinafter, formula (1) and symbols in each formula included in formula (1) will be explained. Note that unless otherwise specified, the same symbols have the same meaning.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000045
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000045

 式(1)において、Ra1~Ra4は、それぞれ独立に、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~30のアルキル基、又は置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基であって、Ra1とRa2、及びRa3とRa4は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
 Ra1~Ra4が表す置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~30のアルキル基の詳細は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」の記載について、炭素数1~30の範囲に限定して参照できる。前記無置換の炭素数1~30のアルキル基は、好ましくはメチル基である。
 Ra1~Ra4が表す置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基の詳細は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における「置換もしくは無置換のシクロアルキル基」の記載について、環形成炭素数3~30の範囲に限定して参照できる。
 Ra1とRa2、及びRa3とRa4は、互いに結合して環を形成している場合、スピロ環を形成していることになる。前記スピロ環は炭化水素環又は複素環であり、単環、縮合環、橋かけビシクロ環、橋かけトリシクロ環から選ばれる。置換もしくは無置換のスピロ環の例を以下に示すが、これらに限定されるものではない。*はフルオレン骨格のベンゼン環への結合位置を示す。
In formula (1), R a1 to R a4 are each independently a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms; R a1 and R a2 and R a3 and R a4 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
For details of the substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms represented by R a1 to R a4 , see the description of "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" in the section "Substituents described in this specification". The reference can be limited to the range of 1 to 30 carbon atoms. The unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms is preferably a methyl group.
For details of the substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms represented by R a1 to R a4 , see "Substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group" in the section of "Substituents described in this specification". The description can be limited to the range of 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
When R a1 and R a2 and R a3 and R a4 are bonded to each other to form a ring, they form a spiro ring. The spiro ring is a hydrocarbon ring or a heterocycle, and is selected from a monocyclic ring, a fused ring, a bridged bicyclo ring, and a bridged tricyclo ring. Examples of substituted or unsubstituted spiro rings are shown below, but are not limited thereto. * indicates the bonding position of the fluorene skeleton to the benzene ring.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000046
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000046

 前記スピロ環は、好ましくは下記のスピロ環である。

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000047
The spiro ring is preferably the following spiro ring.
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000047

 前記スピロ環は、より好ましくは下記のスピロ環である。

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000048
The spiro ring is more preferably the following spiro ring.
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000048

 R、R、及びRb1~Rb12は、それぞれ独立に、
水素原子、ハロゲン原子、ニトロ基、シアノ基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、
-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、
-O-(R904)で表される基、
-S-(R905)で表される基、又は
-N(R906)(R907)で表される基であって、Rb1~Rb12中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
R 1 , R 2 , and R b1 to R b12 are each independently,
Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ),
A group represented by -O-(R 904 ),
In the group represented by -S-(R 905 ) or the group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 ), two adjacent groups among R b1 to R b12 are bonded to each other. may form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.

 R、R、及びRb1~Rb12が表す、水素原子、ハロゲン原子、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、-O-(R904)で表される基、-S-(R905)で表される基、及び-N(R906)(R907)で表される基は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における説明の通りである。
 R、Rは、それぞれ独立に、好ましくは、水素原子、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、より好ましくは水素原子である。
 Rb1~Rb12は、それぞれ独立に、好ましくは、水素原子、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、より好ましくは、水素原子、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、さらに好ましくは、水素原子、無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、特に好ましくは、水素原子、メチル基、イソプロピル基、t-ブチル基である。
 なお、Rb1~Rb12中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。前記環としては、ベンゼン環、ナフタレン環等が挙げられ、この場合、フルオレン骨格が有するベンゼン環と共に縮合環を形成することになり、つまり、それぞれナフタレン環、アントラセン環を形成することになる。前記環は、好ましくはベンゼン環である。
R 1 , R 2 , and R b1 to R b12 represent a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms; Heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms, group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), group represented by -O-(R 904 ), -S-( The group represented by R 905 ) and the group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 ) are as explained in the section of "Substituent described herein".
R 1 and R 2 are each independently preferably a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, and more preferably a hydrogen atom.
R b1 to R b12 are each independently preferably a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, and more preferably a hydrogen atom or a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms. groups, more preferably a hydrogen atom or an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, particularly preferably a hydrogen atom, a methyl group, an isopropyl group, or a t-butyl group.
Note that two adjacent groups in R b1 to R b12 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other. Examples of the ring include a benzene ring and a naphthalene ring. In this case, the ring forms a condensed ring together with the benzene ring of the fluorene skeleton, that is, forms a naphthalene ring and an anthracene ring, respectively. The ring is preferably a benzene ring.

 前記式(1)の好ましい態様の具体例として、下記式(1-1)~(1-9)が挙げられるが、特にこれらに制限されるものではない。なお、下記式(1-1)~(1-9)中の各基は、式(1)中の同一符号の基と同じである。以下、式(1)中の各説明は、下記式(1-1)~(1-9)にも当てはまる。 Specific examples of preferred embodiments of the formula (1) include the following formulas (1-1) to (1-9), but are not particularly limited to these. Note that each group in the following formulas (1-1) to (1-9) is the same as the group with the same symbol in formula (1). Below, each explanation in formula (1) also applies to the following formulas (1-1) to (1-9).

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000049
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000049

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000050
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000050

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000051
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000051

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000052
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000052

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000053
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000053

 また、式(1)において、Arは、下記式(i)~(iii)のいずれかで表される基である。Arは、特に制限されるものではないが、好ましくは、式(i)で表される基又は式(ii)で表される基である。
 以下、式(i)、式(ii)、式(iii)の順に詳述する。
Furthermore, in formula (1), Ar 1 is a group represented by any of the following formulas (i) to (iii). Although Ar 1 is not particularly limited, it is preferably a group represented by formula (i) or a group represented by formula (ii).
Hereinafter, formula (i), formula (ii), and formula (iii) will be explained in detail in this order.

(式(i)について)

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000054
(Regarding formula (i))
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000054

 式(i)において、Rb13~Rb16は、それぞれ独立に、
水素原子、ハロゲン原子、ニトロ基、シアノ基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、
-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、
-O-(R904)で表される基、
-S-(R905)で表される基、又は
-N(R906)(R907)で表される基
であって、Rb13~Rb16中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合してベンゼン環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
 Arは、置換もしくは無置換のフェニレン基、又は置換もしくは無置換のナフチレン基である。
 Arは、前記Rb13~Rb16中の隣接する2つの基が互いに結合していない場合には、置換もしくは無置換のフェニル基、又は置換もしくは無置換のナフチル基であり、前記Rb13~Rb16中の隣接する2つの基が互いに結合してベンゼン環を形成している場合には、水素原子、置換もしくは無置換のフェニル基、又は置換もしくは無置換のナフチル基である。
 n1は、0、1、又は2である。
 *1は、式(1)中に示されている窒素原子との結合位置を示す。
 n2は、1以上の整数である。
 Rは、n2が1の場合、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数3~30のアルキル基、又は置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基(但し、アダマンチル基を除く。)であって、n2が2以上の整数の場合、炭素数1~30のアルキル基、又は環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基である。
 *2は、Rの結合位置を示しており、Rは、(a)Rb13~Rb16から選択される少なくとも1種の代わりにベンゼン環に結合しているか、(b)Rb13~Rb16から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合しているか、(c)Ar及びArからなる群から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合しているか、又は、前記(a)~(c)からなる群から選択される2種以上の態様を満たす。
In formula (i), R b13 to R b16 are each independently,
Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ),
A group represented by -O-(R 904 ),
In the group represented by -S-(R 905 ) or the group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 ), two adjacent groups in R b13 to R b16 are bonded to each other. may be combined to form a benzene ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
Ar 2 is a substituted or unsubstituted phenylene group or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthylene group.
Ar 3 is a substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group, or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group when two adjacent groups in R b13 to R b16 are not bonded to each other ; When two adjacent groups in R b16 are bonded to each other to form a benzene ring, it is a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group, or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group.
n1 is 0, 1, or 2.
*1 indicates the bonding position with the nitrogen atom shown in formula (1).
n2 is an integer of 1 or more.
When n2 is 1, R x is a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 3 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms (excluding an adamantyl group). When n2 is an integer of 2 or more, it is an alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
*2 indicates the bonding position of R x , and R x is either (a) bonded to the benzene ring instead of at least one selected from R b13 to R b16 , or (b) R x (c) is bonded to at least one group selected from the group consisting of Ar 2 and Ar 3 , or ( a ) - Meets two or more aspects selected from the group consisting of (c).

 Rb13~Rb16が表す水素原子、ハロゲン原子、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、-O-(R904)で表される基、-S-(R905)で表される基及び-N(R906)(R907)で表される基は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における説明の通りである。 R b13 to R b16 represent a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms; 50 alkynyl group, substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms heteroaryl group, -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), -O-(R 904 ), -S-(R 905 ) The group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 ) is as explained in the section of "Substituent described herein".

 Rb13~Rb16は、それぞれ独立に、好ましくは、水素原子、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、より好ましくは、水素原子、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~18のアリール基、さらに好ましくは、水素原子、無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~12のアリール基、特に好ましくは、水素原子、メチル基、イソプロピル基、t-ブチル基、シクロペンチル基、シクロヘキシル基、1-アダマンチル基、2-アダマンチル基、1-ノルボルニル基、2-ノルボルニル基、置換もしくは無置換のフェニル基である。
 なお、Rb13~Rb16中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合してベンゼン環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。Rb13~Rb16中の隣接する2つの基が互いに結合してベンゼン環を形成している場合、Rb13~Rb16が結合しているベンゼン環と共に縮合環、つまりナフタレン環を形成していることになる。
R b13 to R b16 are each independently preferably a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring-forming carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms. An unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, more preferably a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms. group, a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 18 ring carbon atoms, more preferably a hydrogen atom, an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, and an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms. group, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 12 ring carbon atoms, particularly preferably a hydrogen atom, methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group, 2-adamantyl group group, 1-norbornyl group, 2-norbornyl group, substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group.
Note that two adjacent groups in R b13 to R b16 may be bonded to each other to form a benzene ring, or may not be bonded to each other. When two adjacent groups in R b13 to R b16 bond to each other to form a benzene ring, R b13 to R b16 together with the benzene ring to which they are bonded form a fused ring, that is, a naphthalene ring. It turns out.

 Arが表す置換もしくは無置換のフェニレン基、置換もしくは無置換のナフチレン基において、置換基は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における説明の通りである。当該置換基は、好ましくは、無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、より好ましくは、無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~20のシクロアルキル基、さらに好ましくは、無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、特に好ましくは、メチル基、イソプロピル基、t-ブチル基、シクロペンチル基、シクロヘキシル基、1-アダマンチル基、2-アダマンチル基、1-ノルボルニル基、2-ノルボルニル基である。
 n1は、0、1、又は2であり、好ましくは0又は1であり、0であってもよいし、1であってもよい。
In the substituted or unsubstituted phenylene group or the substituted or unsubstituted naphthylene group represented by Ar 2 , the substituents are as explained in the section of "Substituents described in this specification". The substituent is preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, and more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms. , an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 20 ring carbon atoms, more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, particularly preferably , methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, and 2-norbornyl group.
n1 is 0, 1, or 2, preferably 0 or 1, and may be 0 or 1.

 Arが表す置換もしくは無置換のフェニル基、置換もしくは無置換のナフチル基において、置換基は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における説明の通りである。当該置換基は、好ましくは、無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、より好ましくは、無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~20のシクロアルキル基、さらに好ましくは、無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、特に好ましくは、メチル基、イソプロピル基、t-ブチル基、シクロペンチル基、シクロヘキシル基、1-アダマンチル基、2-アダマンチル基、1-ノルボルニル基、2-ノルボルニル基である。 In the substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group or the substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group represented by Ar 3 , the substituents are as explained in the section of "Substituent described herein." The substituent is preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, and more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms. , an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 20 ring carbon atoms, more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, particularly preferably , methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, and 2-norbornyl group.

 Rの置換数を表すn2は1以上の整数であって、1であってもよいし、2以上の整数であってもよく、好ましくは1~6の整数、より好ましくは1~4の整数、さらに好ましくは1~3の整数である。
 n2が1の場合にRが表す置換もしくは無置換の炭素数3~30のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基(但し、アダマンチル基を除く。)は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」の記載について、炭素数3~30の範囲に限定して参照でき、且つ、「置換もしくは無置換のシクロアルキル基」の記載について、環形成炭素数3~30の範囲に限定して参照できる。
 n2が1の場合のRは、好ましくは、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数3~10のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~9のシクロアルキル基、より好ましくは、無置換の炭素数3~10のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~9のシクロアルキル基、さらに好ましくは、無置換の炭素数3~6のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~9のシクロアルキル基、特に好ましくは、イソプロピル基、t-ブチル基、シクロペンチル基、シクロヘキシル基、1-ノルボルニル基、2-ノルボルニル基である。
n2 representing the number of substitutions for R x is an integer of 1 or more, and may be 1 or an integer of 2 or more, preferably an integer of 1 to 6, more preferably 1 to 4 It is an integer, more preferably an integer from 1 to 3.
When n2 is 1, R x represents a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 3 to 30 carbon atoms or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms (excluding adamantyl groups). , the description of "substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group" in the section of "substituents described in this specification" can be referred to in the range of 3 to 30 carbon atoms, and "substituted or unsubstituted cyclo Regarding the description of "alkyl group", reference can be made to the range of 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
When n2 is 1, R x is preferably a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 3 to 10 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 9 ring carbon atoms, and more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 3 to 9 ring carbon atoms. an alkyl group having 3 to 10 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 9 ring carbon atoms, more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 3 to 6 carbon atoms, and an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 6 ring carbon atoms; The cycloalkyl group of No. 9 is particularly preferably an isopropyl group, a t-butyl group, a cyclopentyl group, a cyclohexyl group, a 1-norbornyl group, and a 2-norbornyl group.

 n2が2以上の整数の場合にRが表す炭素数1~30のアルキル基、環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」の記載について、炭素数1~30の範囲に限定して参照でき、且つ、「置換もしくは無置換のシクロアルキル基」の記載について、環形成炭素数3~30の範囲に限定して参照できる。
 n2が2以上の整数の場合のRは、好ましくは、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~10のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、より好ましくは、無置換の炭素数1~10のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、さらに好ましくは、無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、特に好ましくは、メチル基、イソプロピル基、t-ブチル基、シクロペンチル基、シクロヘキシル基、1-アダマンチル基、2-アダマンチル基、1-ノルボルニル基、2-ノルボルニル基である。
When n2 is an integer of 2 or more, the alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms or the cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms represented by R For the description of "or unsubstituted alkyl group", reference can be made in the range of 1 to 30 carbon atoms, and for the description of "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group", the range of carbon number of the ring formation is 3 to 30. You can refer only to
When n2 is an integer of 2 or more, R x is preferably a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 10 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, and more preferably , an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 10 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted ring carbon atom 3 to 10 cycloalkyl groups, particularly preferably methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, 2-norbornyl group be.

 *2は、前述の通り、Rの結合位置を示しており、Rは、(a)Rb13~Rb16から選択される少なくとも1種の代わりにベンゼン環に結合しているか、(b)Rb13~Rb16から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合しているか、(c)Ar及びArからなる群から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合しているか、又は、前記(a)~(c)からなる群から選択される2種以上の態様を満たす。
 前記(b)の態様は、Rb13~Rb16から選択される少なくとも1種の基のどこに結合していてもよい。RがRb13に結合している場合を例に挙げると、Rb13が置換された環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基であるとすると、Rが当該アリール基に結合していてもよいし、当該アリール基の置換基に結合していてもよいという意味である。
 同様に、前記(c)の態様は、Ar及びArからなる群から選択される少なくとも1種の基のどこに結合していてもよい。
*2 indicates the bonding position of R x , as described above, and R x is either (a) bonded to the benzene ring instead of at least one selected from R b13 to R b16 , or (b ) bonded to at least one group selected from R b13 to R b16 ; (c) bonded to at least one group selected from the group consisting of Ar 2 and Ar 3 ; or Meets two or more aspects selected from the group consisting of (a) to (c).
In the embodiment (b) above, the bond may be bonded anywhere on at least one group selected from R b13 to R b16 . For example, when R x is bonded to R b13 , if R b13 is a substituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, even if R x is bonded to the aryl group, It means that it may be bonded to a substituent of the aryl group.
Similarly, the above aspect (c) may be bonded anywhere on at least one group selected from the group consisting of Ar 2 and Ar 3 .

 前記式(i)の好ましい態様の具体例として、下記式(i-1)~(i-5)が挙げられるが、特にこれらに制限されるものではない。なお、下記式中の各基は、式(i)中の同一符号の基と同じである。前記式(i)中の各説明は、下記式(i-1)~(i-5)にも当てはまる。前記式(i)は、下記式(i-1)又は下記式(i-5)であってもよいし、下記式(i-2)~(i-4)のいずれかであってもよい。 Specific examples of preferred embodiments of the formula (i) include the following formulas (i-1) to (i-5), but are not particularly limited to these. In addition, each group in the following formula is the same as the group with the same symbol in formula (i). Each explanation in the above formula (i) also applies to the following formulas (i-1) to (i-5). The formula (i) may be the following formula (i-1) or the following formula (i-5), or may be any of the following formulas (i-2) to (i-4). .

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000055
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000055

 式(i-1)において、Arと記載されているベンゼン環は、Arがベンゼン環であることを示している。つまり、Arと記載されているベンゼン環は、置換基を有していてもよいし、Rが結合していてもよいし、当該ベンゼン環が有する置換基にRが結合していてもよい。
 Arと記載されているベンゼン環が有していてもよい置換基は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における『「置換もしくは無置換の」という場合の置換基』と同じである。当該置換基は、好ましくは炭素数1~50のアルキル基、環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、より好ましくは炭素数1~18のアルキル基、環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、さらに好ましくは炭素数1~6のアルキル基、環形成炭素数5~10のシクロアルキル基、特に好ましくは、メチル基、イソプロピル基、t-ブチル基、シクロペンチル基、シクロヘキシル基、1-アダマンチル基、2-アダマンチル基、1-ノルボルニル基、2-ノルボルニル基である。
 なお、Arにおいて、Arと結合しておらず、且つ、置換基を有していない部位は、水素原子が結合している。
In formula (i-1), the benzene ring described as Ar 2 indicates that Ar 2 is a benzene ring. In other words, the benzene ring described as Ar 2 may have a substituent, R x may be bonded to it, or R x may be bonded to the substituent possessed by the benzene ring. Good too.
The substituent that the benzene ring described as Ar 2 may have is the same as the "substituent in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted"" in the "substituent described in this specification" section. be. The substituent is preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, more preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 18 carbon atoms, or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms. group, more preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, a cycloalkyl group having 5 to 10 ring carbon atoms, particularly preferably a methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, and 2-norbornyl group.
Note that a hydrogen atom is bonded to a portion of Ar 2 that is not bonded to Ar 3 and has no substituent.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000056
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000056

 前記式(i-2)~(i-4)中に記載されているナフタレン環において、置換基が記載されていない部位は、水素原子が結合していてもよいし、Rが結合していてもよいし、置換基が結合していてもよい。また、当該置換基にRが結合していてもよい。
 前記置換基は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における『「置換もしくは無置換の」という場合の置換基』と同じである。当該置換基は、好ましくは炭素数1~50のアルキル基、環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、より好ましくは炭素数1~18のアルキル基、環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、さらに好ましくは炭素数1~6のアルキル基、環形成炭素数5~10のシクロアルキル基、特に好ましくは、メチル基、イソプロピル基、t-ブチル基、シクロペンチル基、シクロヘキシル基、1-アダマンチル基、2-アダマンチル基、1-ノルボルニル基、2-ノルボルニル基である。
In the naphthalene rings described in the above formulas (i-2) to (i-4), a hydrogen atom may be bonded to the moiety where no substituent is described, or R x may be bonded to the moiety where no substituent is described. or a substituent may be bonded. Moreover, R x may be bonded to the substituent.
The above-mentioned substituent is the same as "substituent in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted"" in the section of "substituent described in this specification". The substituent is preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, more preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 18 carbon atoms, or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms. group, more preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, a cycloalkyl group having 5 to 10 ring carbon atoms, particularly preferably a methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, and 2-norbornyl group.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000057
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000057

 式(i-5)において、Arと記載されているベンゼン環は、Arがベンゼン環であることを示している。つまり、Arと記載されているベンゼン環は、置換基を有していてもよいし、Rが結合していてもよいし、当該ベンゼン環が有する置換基にRが結合していてもよい。
 Arと記載されているベンゼン環が有していてもよい置換基は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における『「置換もしくは無置換の」という場合の置換基』と同じである。当該置換基は、好ましくは炭素数1~50のアルキル基、環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、より好ましくは炭素数1~18のアルキル基、環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、さらに好ましくは炭素数1~6のアルキル基、環形成炭素数5~10のシクロアルキル基、特に好ましくは、メチル基、イソプロピル基、t-ブチル基、シクロペンチル基、シクロヘキシル基、1-アダマンチル基、2-アダマンチル基、1-ノルボルニル基、2-ノルボルニル基である。
 なお、Arにおいて、別のArと結合していないか又はArと結合しておらず、且つ、置換基を有していない部位は、水素原子が結合している。
 特に制限されるものではないが、式(i-5)では、Arは置換もしくは無置換のフェニル基であることが好ましい。
In formula (i-5), the benzene ring described as Ar 2 indicates that Ar 2 is a benzene ring. In other words, the benzene ring described as Ar 2 may have a substituent, R x may be bonded to it, or R x may be bonded to the substituent possessed by the benzene ring. Good too.
The substituent that the benzene ring described as Ar 2 may have is the same as "substituent in the case of "substituted or unsubstituted"" in the section of "substituent described in this specification". be. The substituent is preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, more preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 18 carbon atoms, or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms. group, more preferably an alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, a cycloalkyl group having 5 to 10 ring carbon atoms, particularly preferably a methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, and 2-norbornyl group.
Note that a hydrogen atom is bonded to a portion of Ar 2 that is not bonded to another Ar 2 or bonded to Ar 3 and does not have a substituent.
Although not particularly limited, in formula (i-5), Ar 3 is preferably a substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group.

(式(ii)について)

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000058
(Regarding formula (ii))
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000058

 式(ii)において、
 Xは、-O-、-S-、又は-N(-R)-〔Rは、炭素数1~50のアルキル基、又は環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基である。〕である。
 Rc1、Rc2、Rb17~Rb22及びRd1~Rd6は、それぞれ独立に、
水素原子、ハロゲン原子、ニトロ基、シアノ基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、
-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、
-O-(R904)で表される基、
-S-(R905)で表される基、又は
-N(R906)(R907)で表される基
であって、Rc1、Rc2及びRb17~Rb22中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
 n3は、0又は1である。
 *3は、式(1)中に示されている窒素原子との結合位置を示す。
 *4及び*5は、Rd1~Rd6のいずれかの代わりにベンゼン環に結合していることを示しており、それぞれ異なる位置に結合している。但し、n3が0のときは、*3と*6とが*4及び*5を介さずに直結する。
 *6は、Rb17~Rb19のいずれかの代わりにベンゼン環に結合していることを示す。
 Ry1は、炭素数1~30のアルキル基、又は環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基である。
 n4は、1以上の整数である。
 *7は、Ry1の結合位置を示しており、Ry1は、(d)Rc1、Rc2及びRb17~Rb22から選択される少なくとも1種の代わりにベンゼン環に結合しているか、(e)Rc1、Rc2、R及びRb17~Rb22から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合しているか、又は、前記(d)及び前記(e)の両方の態様を満たす。
In formula (ii),
X is -O-, -S-, or -N(-R 3 )- [R 3 is an alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms or an aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms. ].
R c1 , R c2 , R b17 to R b22 and R d1 to R d6 are each independently,
Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ),
A group represented by -O-(R 904 ),
A group represented by -S-(R 905 ) or a group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 ), in which two adjacent groups among R c1 , R c2 and R b17 to R b22 The groups may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
n3 is 0 or 1.
*3 indicates the bonding position with the nitrogen atom shown in formula (1).
*4 and *5 indicate that they are bonded to the benzene ring instead of any of R d1 to R d6 , and are bonded to different positions. However, when n3 is 0, *3 and *6 are directly connected without going through *4 and *5.
*6 indicates that it is bonded to the benzene ring instead of any one of R b17 to R b19 .
R y1 is an alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
n4 is an integer of 1 or more.
*7 indicates the bonding position of R y1 , and R y1 is bonded to the benzene ring instead of (d) at least one selected from R c1 , R c2 and R b17 to R b22 ; (e) It is bonded to at least one group selected from R c1 , R c2 , R 3 and R b17 to R b22 , or satisfies both aspects (d) and (e) above.

 Xが表す-N(-R)-において、Rが表す炭素数1~50のアルキル基は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」の無置換のアルキル基に関する説明を参照できる。
 Xが表す-N(-R)-において、Rが表す環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における「置換もしくは無置換のアリール基」の無置換のアルキル基に関する説明を参照できる。
 Xとしては、好ましくは-O-である。
In -N ( -R 3 )-, represented by Reference can be made to the explanation regarding unsubstituted alkyl groups.
In -N ( -R 3 )-, represented by '' regarding unsubstituted alkyl groups.
X is preferably -O-.

 Rc1、Rc2、Rb17~Rb22及びRd1~Rd6が表す水素原子、ハロゲン原子、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、-O-(R904)で表される基、-S-(R905)で表される基及び-N(R906)(R907)で表される基は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における説明の通りである。 R c1 , R c2 , R b17 to R b22 and R d1 to R d6 represent a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms; Alkenyl group, substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, A substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms, a group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), a group represented by -O-(R 904 ), The group represented by -S-(R 905 ) and the group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 ) are as explained in the section of "Substituent described herein".

 Rc1、Rc2、Rb17~Rb22及びRd1~Rd6は、それぞれ独立に、好ましくは、水素原子、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、より好ましくは、水素原子、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~18のアリール基、さらに好ましくは、水素原子、無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~12のアリール基、特に好ましくは、水素原子、メチル基、イソプロピル基、t-ブチル基、シクロペンチル基、シクロヘキシル基、1-アダマンチル基、2-アダマンチル基、1-ノルボルニル基、2-ノルボルニル基、置換もしくは無置換のフェニル基である。
 なお、Rc1、Rc2及びRb17~Rb22中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。Rc1、Rc2及びRb17~Rb22中の隣接する2つの基が互いに結合して環を形成している場合、Rc1、Rc2及びRb17~Rb22が結合しているベンゼン環と共に縮合環を形成していることになる。
 n3は、0又は1であり、好ましくは0である。
R c1 , R c2 , R b17 to R b22 and R d1 to R d6 are each independently preferably a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted ring-forming group. A cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring-forming carbon atoms, more preferably a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms. A substituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 18 ring carbon atoms, more preferably a hydrogen atom, an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, and an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms. Substituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 12 ring carbon atoms, particularly preferably hydrogen atom, methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group , cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, 2-norbornyl group, substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group.
Note that two adjacent groups in R c1 , R c2 and R b17 to R b22 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other. When two adjacent groups in R c1 , R c2 and R b17 to R b22 are bonded to each other to form a ring, together with the benzene ring to which R c1 , R c2 and R b17 to R b22 are bonded, This means that a fused ring is formed.
n3 is 0 or 1, preferably 0.

 Ry1が表す炭素数1~30のアルキル基、環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」の記載について、炭素数1~30の範囲に限定して参照でき、且つ、「置換もしくは無置換のシクロアルキル基」の記載について、環形成炭素数3~30の範囲に限定して参照できる。
 Ry1は、好ましくは、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~10のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、より好ましくは、無置換の炭素数1~10のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、さらに好ましくは、無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、特に好ましくは、メチル基、イソプロピル基、t-ブチル基、シクロペンチル基、シクロヘキシル基、1-アダマンチル基、2-アダマンチル基、1-ノルボルニル基、2-ノルボルニル基である。
 n4は、1以上の整数であって、好ましくは1~6の整数、より好ましくは1~4の整数、さらに好ましくは1~3の整数であって、1であってもよいし、2であってもよいし、3であってもよい。
The alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms and the cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms represented by R y1 are the same as the description of ``substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group'' in the ``substituents described in this specification'' section. Regarding the description of "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group", reference can be made to a range of 1 to 30 carbon atoms, and reference can be made to a range of 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
R y1 is preferably a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 10 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, and more preferably an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 1 to 10 ring carbon atoms. an alkyl group, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, Particularly preferred are methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, and 2-norbornyl group.
n4 is an integer of 1 or more, preferably an integer of 1 to 6, more preferably an integer of 1 to 4, still more preferably an integer of 1 to 3, and may be 1 or 2. There may be one or three.

 *7は、Ry1の結合位置を示しており、Ry1は、(d)Rc1、Rc2及びRb17~Rb22から選択される少なくとも1種の代わりにベンゼン環に結合しているか、(e)Rc1、Rc2、R及びRb17~Rb22から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合しているか、又は、前記(d)及び前記(e)の両方の態様を満たす。
 前記(e)の態様は、Rc1、Rc2、R及びRb17~Rb22から選択される少なくとも1種の基のどこに結合していてもよい。Ry1がRb20に結合している場合を例に挙げると、Rb20が置換された環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基であるとすると、Ry1が当該アリール基に結合していてもよいし、当該アリール基の置換基に結合していてもよい、という意味である。
*7 indicates the bonding position of R y1 , and R y1 is bonded to the benzene ring instead of (d) at least one selected from R c1 , R c2 and R b17 to R b22 ; (e) It is bonded to at least one group selected from R c1 , R c2 , R 3 and R b17 to R b22 , or satisfies both aspects (d) and (e) above.
The above embodiment (e) may be bonded anywhere on at least one group selected from R c1 , R c2 , R 3 and R b17 to R b22 . For example, if R y1 is bonded to R b20 , if R b20 is a substituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, even if R y1 is bonded to the aryl group, It means that it may be bonded to a substituent of the aryl group.

 前記式(ii)の好ましい態様の具体例として、下記式(ii-1)~(ii-7)が挙げられるが、特にこれらに制限されるものではない。なお、下記式中の各基は、式(ii)中の同一符号の基と同じである。前記式(ii)中の各説明は、下記式(ii-1)~(ii-7)にも当てはまる。 Specific examples of preferred embodiments of the formula (ii) include the following formulas (ii-1) to (ii-7), but are not particularly limited to these. In addition, each group in the following formula is the same as the group with the same symbol in formula (ii). Each explanation in the above formula (ii) also applies to the following formulas (ii-1) to (ii-7).

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000059
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000059

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000060
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000060

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000061
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000061

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000062
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000062

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000063
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000063

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000064
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000064

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000065
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000065

(式(iii)について)

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000066
(Regarding formula (iii))
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000066

 式(iii)において、
 Rb23~Rb30及びRe1~Re5は、それぞれ独立に、
水素原子、ハロゲン原子、ニトロ基、シアノ基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、
-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、
-O-(R904)で表される基、
-S-(R905)で表される基、又は
-N(R906)(R907)で表される基;
 R901~R907は、それぞれ独立して、
水素原子、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、又は
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基;
であって、Rb23~Rb30中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
 *8は、式(1)中に示されている窒素原子との結合位置を示す。
 *9は、式(iii)中に示されている窒素原子がRe1~Re5のいずれかの代わりにベンゼン環に結合していることを示している。
 Ry2は、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~30のアルキル基、又は置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基である。
 n5は、1以上の整数である。
 *10は、Ry2の結合位置を示しており、Ry2は、(f)Rb23~Rb30から選択される少なくとも1種の代わりにベンゼン環に結合しているか、(g)Rb23~Rb30から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合している、又は、前記(f)及び前記(g)の両方の態様を満たす。
In formula (iii),
R b23 to R b30 and R e1 to R e5 are each independently,
Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ),
A group represented by -O-(R 904 ),
A group represented by -S-(R 905 ) or a group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 );
R 901 to R 907 are each independently,
hydrogen atom,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
A substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
Two adjacent groups in R b23 to R b30 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
*8 indicates the bonding position with the nitrogen atom shown in formula (1).
*9 indicates that the nitrogen atom shown in formula (iii) is bonded to the benzene ring instead of any one of R e1 to R e5 .
R y2 is a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
n5 is an integer of 1 or more.
*10 indicates the bonding position of R y2 , and R y2 is bonded to the benzene ring instead of (f) at least one selected from R b23 to R b30 , or (g) R b23 to R b30. It is bonded to at least one group selected from R b30 , or satisfies both aspects (f) and (g) above.

 Rb23~Rb30及びRe1~Re5が表す水素原子、ハロゲン原子、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、-O-(R904)で表される基、-S-(R905)で表される基及び-N(R906)(R907)で表される基は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における説明の通りである。 R b23 to R b30 and R e1 to R e5 represent a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms; Substituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted ring Heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 atoms, group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ), group represented by -O-(R 904 ), -S-(R 905 ) and the group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 ) are as explained in the section of "Substituent described herein".

 Rb23~Rb30及びRe1~Re5は、それぞれ独立に、好ましくは、水素原子、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、より好ましくは、水素原子、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~18のアリール基、さらに好ましくは、水素原子、無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~12のアリール基、特に好ましくは、水素原子、メチル基、イソプロピル基、t-ブチル基、シクロペンチル基、シクロヘキシル基、1-アダマンチル基、2-アダマンチル基、1-ノルボルニル基、2-ノルボルニル基、置換もしくは無置換のフェニル基である。
 なお、Rb23~Rb30中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。Rb23~Rb30中の隣接する2つの基が互いに結合して環を形成している場合、Rb23~Rb30が結合しているベンゼン環と共に縮合環、つまりナフタレン環を形成していることになる。
R b23 to R b30 and R e1 to R e5 are each independently preferably a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted ring-forming alkyl group having 3 to 50 carbon atoms. Cycloalkyl group, substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, more preferably hydrogen atom, substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, substituted or unsubstituted ring carbon number 3 to 10 cycloalkyl groups, substituted or unsubstituted aryl groups having 6 to 18 ring carbon atoms, more preferably hydrogen atoms, unsubstituted alkyl groups having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, unsubstituted ring carbon atoms 3 to 10 cycloalkyl groups, substituted or unsubstituted aryl groups having 6 to 12 ring carbon atoms, particularly preferably hydrogen atoms, methyl groups, isopropyl groups, t-butyl groups, cyclopentyl groups, cyclohexyl groups, 1- These are adamantyl group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, 2-norbornyl group, and substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group.
Note that two adjacent groups in R b23 to R b30 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other. When two adjacent groups in R b23 to R b30 are bonded to each other to form a ring, R b23 to R b30 form a condensed ring, that is, a naphthalene ring, together with the benzene ring to which they are bonded. become.

 Ry2が表す炭素数1~30のアルキル基、環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基は、「本明細書に記載の置換基」の項における「置換もしくは無置換のアルキル基」の記載について、炭素数1~30の範囲に限定して参照でき、且つ、「置換もしくは無置換のシクロアルキル基」の記載について、環形成炭素数3~30の範囲に限定して参照できる。
 Ry2は、好ましくは、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~10のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、より好ましくは、無置換の炭素数1~10のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、さらに好ましくは、無置換の炭素数1~6のアルキル基、無置換の環形成炭素数3~10のシクロアルキル基、特に好ましくは、メチル基、イソプロピル基、t-ブチル基、シクロペンチル基、シクロヘキシル基、1-アダマンチル基、2-アダマンチル基、1-ノルボルニル基、2-ノルボルニル基である。
 n5は、1以上の整数であって、好ましくは1~6の整数、より好ましくは1~4の整数、さらに好ましくは1~3の整数であって、1であってもよいし、2であってもよいし、3であってもよい。
The alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms and the cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms represented by R y2 are the same as the description of ``substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group'' in the section ``Substituents described in this specification.'' Regarding the description of "substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group", reference can be made to a range of 1 to 30 carbon atoms, and reference can be made to a range of 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
R y2 is preferably a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 10 carbon atoms, a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, and more preferably an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 1 to 10 ring carbon atoms. an alkyl group, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, more preferably an unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, an unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 10 ring carbon atoms, Particularly preferred are methyl group, isopropyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, cyclohexyl group, 1-adamantyl group, 2-adamantyl group, 1-norbornyl group, and 2-norbornyl group.
n5 is an integer of 1 or more, preferably an integer of 1 to 6, more preferably an integer of 1 to 4, still more preferably an integer of 1 to 3, and may be 1 or 2. There may be one or three.

 *10は、Ry2の結合位置を示しており、Ry2は、(f)Rb23~Rb30から選択される少なくとも1種の代わりにベンゼン環に結合しているか、(g)Rb23~Rb30から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合している、又は、前記(f)及び前記(g)の両方の態様を満たす。
 前記(g)の態様は、Rb23~Rb30から選択される少なくとも1種の基のどこに結合していてもよい。Ry2がRb23に結合している場合を例に挙げると、Rb23が置換された環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基であるとすると、Ry2が当該アリール基に結合していてもよいし、当該アリール基の置換基に結合していてもよい、という意味である。
*10 indicates the bonding position of R y2 , and R y2 is bonded to the benzene ring instead of (f) at least one selected from R b23 to R b30 , or (g) R b23 to R b30. It is bonded to at least one group selected from R b30 , or satisfies both aspects (f) and (g) above.
The above embodiment (g) may be bonded anywhere on at least one group selected from R b23 to R b30 . For example, if R y2 is bonded to R b23 , if R b23 is a substituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, even if R y2 is bonded to the aryl group, It means that it may be bonded to a substituent of the aryl group.

 前記式(iii)の好ましい態様の具体例として、下記式(iii-1)~(iii-3)が挙げられるが、特にこれらに制限されるものではない。なお、下記式中の各基は、式(iii)中の同一符号の基と同じである。前記式(iii)中の各説明は、下記式(iii-1)~(iii-3)にも当てはまる。 Specific examples of preferred embodiments of the formula (iii) include the following formulas (iii-1) to (iii-3), but are not particularly limited to these. In addition, each group in the following formula is the same as the group with the same symbol in formula (iii). Each explanation in the above formula (iii) also applies to the following formulas (iii-1) to (iii-3).

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000067
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000067

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000068
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000068

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000069
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000069

 前述の通り、本明細書において、「水素原子」は、軽水素原子、重水素原子及び三重水素原子のいずれであってもよい。従って、化合物(1)は天然由来の重水素原子を含んでいてもよい。
 また、原料化合物の一部又は全てに重水素化した化合物を使用することにより、化合物(1)に重水素原子を意図的に導入してもよい。即ち、化合物(1)は、前記式(1)で表される化合物であって、該化合物に含まれる水素原子の少なくとも一つが重水素原子である化合物であってもよい。つまり、化合物(1)は、分子中に1つ以上の重水素原子を有する態様であってもよい。
As mentioned above, in this specification, a "hydrogen atom" may be any of a light hydrogen atom, a deuterium atom, and a tritium atom. Therefore, compound (1) may contain a naturally occurring deuterium atom.
Further, deuterium atoms may be intentionally introduced into compound (1) by using a deuterated compound as part or all of the raw material compounds. That is, the compound (1) may be a compound represented by the above formula (1), in which at least one of the hydrogen atoms contained in the compound is a deuterium atom. That is, compound (1) may have one or more deuterium atoms in the molecule.

 化合物(1)の重水素化率は、使用する原料化合物の重水素化率に依存する。所定の重水素化率の原料を用いたとしても、天然由来の一定の割合で軽水素同位体が含まれ得る。従って、下記で示される化合物(1)の重水素化率の態様は、単に化学式で表される重水素原子の数をカウントして求められる割合に対し、天然由来の微量の同位体を考慮した比率が含まれる。
 化合物(1)の重水素化率は、好ましくは1%以上、より好ましくは3%以上、さらに好ましくは5%以上、よりさらに好ましくは10%以上、よりさらに好ましくは50%以上である。
The deuteration rate of compound (1) depends on the deuteration rate of the raw material compound used. Even if a raw material with a predetermined deuteration rate is used, a certain proportion of naturally derived light hydrogen isotopes may be included. Therefore, the aspect of the deuteration rate of compound (1) shown below is based on the ratio calculated by simply counting the number of deuterium atoms represented by the chemical formula, taking into account trace amounts of naturally occurring isotopes. Contains ratios.
The deuteration rate of compound (1) is preferably 1% or more, more preferably 3% or more, even more preferably 5% or more, even more preferably 10% or more, even more preferably 50% or more.

 化合物(1)は、重水素化された化合物と重水素化されていない化合物を含む混合物、異なる重水素化率を有する2以上の化合物の混合物であってもよい。このような混合物の重水素化率は、好ましくは1%以上、より好ましくは3%以上、さらに好ましくは5%以上、よりさらに好ましくは10%以上、よりさらに好ましくは50%以上、且つ、100%未満である。
また、化合物(1)中の全水素原子数に対する重水素原子数の割合は、好ましくは1%以上、より好ましくは3%以上、さらに好ましくは5%以上、よりさらに好ましくは10%以上、且つ、100%以下である。
Compound (1) may be a mixture containing a deuterated compound and a non-deuterated compound, or a mixture of two or more compounds having different deuteration rates. The deuteration rate of such a mixture is preferably 1% or more, more preferably 3% or more, even more preferably 5% or more, even more preferably 10% or more, even more preferably 50% or more, and 100% or more. less than %.
Further, the ratio of the number of deuterium atoms to the total number of hydrogen atoms in compound (1) is preferably 1% or more, more preferably 3% or more, even more preferably 5% or more, even more preferably 10% or more, and , 100% or less.

 本発明の一態様において、化合物(1)は、製造コストの観点から、軽水素体であることが好ましい。前記軽水素体とは、化合物(1)の総量に対する軽水素体の含有割合が、90モル%以上、好ましくは95モル%以上、より好ましくは99モル%以上(それぞれ100%を含む)であることを意味する。 In one embodiment of the present invention, compound (1) is preferably a light hydrogen compound from the viewpoint of manufacturing cost. The light hydrogen body is one in which the content ratio of the light hydrogen body to the total amount of compound (1) is 90 mol% or more, preferably 95 mol% or more, more preferably 99 mol% or more (each including 100%). It means that.

 化合物(1)は、当業者であれば、公知の合成方法及び後述の合成例を参考にして容易に製造することができる。 Compound (1) can be easily produced by those skilled in the art with reference to known synthesis methods and synthesis examples described below.

 以下に化合物(1)の具体例を示すが、以下の例示化合物に限定されるものではない。
 下記具体例中、無置換の場合は軽水素原子が結合していることを意味し、Dは重水素原子である。また、結合基の先に何も記載されていない場合は、化学の慣例に倣ってメチル基であることを意味する。
Specific examples of compound (1) are shown below, but are not limited to the following exemplified compounds.
In the following specific examples, when there is no substitution, it means that a light hydrogen atom is bonded, and D is a deuterium atom. Furthermore, if nothing is written before the bonding group, it means a methyl group following chemical conventions.

<式(i)で表される基を有する、式(1)で表される化合物の例>

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000070


  <Example of a compound represented by formula (1) having a group represented by formula (i)>
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000070


Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000071


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000071


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000072


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000072


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000073


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000073


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000074


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000074


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000075


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000075


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000076


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000076


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000077


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000077


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000078


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000078


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000079


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000079


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000080


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000080


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000081


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000081


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000082


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000082


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000083


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000083


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000084


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000084


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000085


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000085


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000086


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000086


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000087


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000087


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000088


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000088


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000089


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000089


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000090


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000090


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000091


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000091


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000092


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000092


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000093


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000093


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000094


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000094


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000095


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000095


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000096


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000096


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000097


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000097


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000098


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000098


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000099


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000099


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000100


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000100


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000101


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000101


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000102


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000102


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000103


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000103


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000104


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000104


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000105


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000105


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000106


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000106


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000107


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000107


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000108


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000108


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000109
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000109

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000110
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000110

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000111
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000111

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000112
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000112

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000113
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000113

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000114
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000114

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000115
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000115

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000116
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000116

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000117
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000117

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000118
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000118

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000119
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000119

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000120
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000120

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000121
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000121

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000122
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000122

<式(ii)又は(iii)で表される基を有する、式(1)で表される化合物の例>

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000123


  <Example of a compound represented by formula (1) having a group represented by formula (ii) or (iii)>
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000123


Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000124


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000124


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000125


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000125


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000126


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000126


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000127


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000127


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000128


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000128


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000129


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000129


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000130


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000130


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000131


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000131


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000132


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000132


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000133


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000133


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000134


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000134


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000135


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000135


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000136


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000136


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000137


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000137


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000138


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000138


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000139


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000139


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000140


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000140


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000141


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000141


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000142


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000142


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000143


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000143


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000144


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000144


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000145


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000145


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000146


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000146


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000147


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000147


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000148


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000148


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000149


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000149


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000150


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000150


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000151


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000151


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000152


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000152


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000153


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000153


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000154


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000154


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000155


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000155


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000156


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000156


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000157


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000157


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000158


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000158


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000159


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000159


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000160


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000160


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000161


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000161


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000162


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000162


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000163


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000163


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000164


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000164


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000165


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000165


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000166


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000166


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000167


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000167


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000168


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000168


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000169


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000169


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000170


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000170


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000171


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000171


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000172


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000172


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000173


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000173


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000174


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000174


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000175


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000175


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000176


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000176


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000177


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000177


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000178


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000178


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000179


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000179


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000180


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000180


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000181


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000181


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000182


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000182


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000183


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000183


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000184


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000184


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000185


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000185


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000186


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000186


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000187


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000187


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000188


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000188


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000189


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000189


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000190


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000190


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000191


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000191


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000192


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000192


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000193


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000193


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000194


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000194


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000195


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000195


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000196


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000196


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000197


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000197


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000198


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000198


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000199


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000199


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000200


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000200


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000201


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000201


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000202


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000202


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000203


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000203


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000204


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000204


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000205


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000205


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000206


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000206


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000207


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000207


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000208


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000208


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000209


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000209


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000210


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000210


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000211


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000211


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000212


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000212


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000213


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000213


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000214


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000214


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000215


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000215


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000216


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000216


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000217


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000217


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000218


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000218


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000219


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000219


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000220


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000220


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000221


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000221


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000222


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000222


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000223


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000223


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000224


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000224


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000225


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000225


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000226


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000226


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000227


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000227


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000228
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000228

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000229
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000229

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000230
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000230

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000231
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000231

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000232
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000232

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000233
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000233

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000234
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000234

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000235
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000235

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000236


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000236


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000237


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000237


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000238


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000238


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000239


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000239


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000240


 
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000240


 

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000241
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000241

有機EL素子
 本発明の有機EL素子は、陽極、陰極、及び該陽極と陰極の間に配置された有機層を含む。該有機層は発光層を含み、該有機層の少なくとも1層が化合物(1)を含む。
 化合物(1)が含まれる有機層の例としては、陽極と発光層との間に設けられる正孔輸送帯域(正孔注入層、正孔輸送層、電子阻止層、励起子阻止層等)、発光層、陰極と発光層との間に設けられる電子輸送帯域(電子注入層、電子輸送層、正孔阻止層等)から選ばれる少なくとも1層が挙げられる。
 本発明の一態様においては、前記有機層が前記陽極と前記発光層の間に正孔輸送帯域を含み、前記正孔輸送帯域が化合物(1)を含むことが好ましく、正孔注入層、正孔輸送層が化合物(1)を含むことがより好ましく、正孔輸送層が化合物(1)を含むことがさらに好ましい。
Organic EL Element The organic EL element of the present invention includes an anode, a cathode, and an organic layer disposed between the anode and the cathode. The organic layer includes a light-emitting layer, and at least one of the organic layers includes compound (1).
Examples of organic layers containing compound (1) include hole transport zones (hole injection layer, hole transport layer, electron blocking layer, exciton blocking layer, etc.) provided between the anode and the light emitting layer; At least one layer selected from a light emitting layer and an electron transport zone (electron injection layer, electron transport layer, hole blocking layer, etc.) provided between the cathode and the light emitting layer can be mentioned.
In one aspect of the present invention, the organic layer preferably includes a hole transport zone between the anode and the light emitting layer, the hole transport zone preferably includes compound (1), and the hole injection layer and the hole transport zone preferably include a compound (1). It is more preferable that the hole transport layer contains the compound (1), and it is even more preferable that the hole transport layer contains the compound (1).

 正孔輸送層は2以上の層からなっていてもよく、2層以上の正孔輸送層のいずれか、好ましくは陽極に最も近い(発光層から遠い)正孔輸送層が化合物(1)を含んでもよい。例えば、正孔輸送層が化合物(1)を含み、正孔輸送層が陽極側の第1正孔輸送層と陰極側の第2正孔輸送層からなる場合、前記第1正孔輸送層及び前記第2正孔輸送層の少なくとも一方が化合物(1)を含むことが好ましく、少なくとも前記第1正孔輸送層が化合物(1)を含むことがより好ましい。
 発光層は1層からなっていてもよいし、2以上の層からなっていてもよい。また、電子輸送層は1層からなっていてもよいし、2以上の層からなっていてもよい。
The hole transport layer may consist of two or more layers, and one of the two or more hole transport layers, preferably the hole transport layer closest to the anode (farthest from the light emitting layer), contains compound (1). May include. For example, when the hole transport layer contains the compound (1) and consists of a first hole transport layer on the anode side and a second hole transport layer on the cathode side, the first hole transport layer and It is preferable that at least one of the second hole transport layers contains the compound (1), and it is more preferable that at least the first hole transport layer contains the compound (1).
The light emitting layer may consist of one layer, or may consist of two or more layers. Moreover, the electron transport layer may consist of one layer, or may consist of two or more layers.

 以下、本発明の有機EL素子が含む各層(任意の層を含む)及び各層を生成する化合物(1)以外の材料について説明する。 Hereinafter, each layer (including any layer) included in the organic EL element of the present invention and the materials other than compound (1) that form each layer will be explained.

 本発明の有機EL素子は、蛍光又は燐光発光型の単色発光素子であっても、蛍光/燐光ハイブリッド型の白色発光素子であってもよいし、単独の発光ユニットを有するシンプル型であっても、複数の発光ユニットを有するタンデム型であってもよく、中でも、蛍光発光型の素子であることが好ましい。ここで、「発光ユニット」とは、有機層を含み、そのうちの少なくとも一層が発光層であり、注入された正孔と電子が再結合することにより発光する最小単位をいう。 The organic EL device of the present invention may be a monochromatic fluorescent or phosphorescent type light emitting device, a fluorescent/phosphorescent hybrid type white light emitting device, or a simple type having a single light emitting unit. The device may be of a tandem type having a plurality of light emitting units, and is preferably a fluorescent light emitting device. Here, the "light-emitting unit" refers to a minimum unit that includes an organic layer, at least one of which is a light-emitting layer, and emits light by recombining injected holes and electrons.

 例えば、シンプル型有機EL素子の代表的な素子構成としては、以下の素子構成を挙げることができる。
(1)陽極/発光ユニット/陰極
 また、上記発光ユニットは、燐光発光層や蛍光発光層を複数有する多層型であってもよく、その場合、各発光層の間に、燐光発光層で生成された励起子が蛍光発光層に拡散することを防ぐ目的で、スペース層を有していてもよい。シンプル型発光ユニットの代表的な層構成を以下に示す。丸括弧内の層の有無は任意である。
(a)(正孔注入層/)正孔輸送層/蛍光発光層/電子輸送層(/電子注入層)
(b)(正孔注入層/)正孔輸送層/第1蛍光発光層/第2蛍光発光層/電子輸送層(/電子注入層)
(c)(正孔注入層/)正孔輸送層/燐光発光層/スペース層/蛍光発光層/電子輸送層(/電子注入層)
(d)(正孔注入層/)正孔輸送層/第1燐光発光層/第2燐光発光層/スペース層/蛍光発光層/電子輸送層(/電子注入層)
(e)(正孔注入層/)正孔輸送層/燐光発光層/スペース層/第1蛍光発光層/第2蛍光発光層/電子輸送層(/電子注入層)
(f)(正孔注入層/)正孔輸送層/電子阻止層/蛍光発光層/電子輸送層(/電子注入層)
(g)(正孔注入層/)正孔輸送層/励起子阻止層/蛍光発光層/電子輸送層(/電子注入層)
(h)(正孔注入層/)第1正孔輸送層/第2正孔輸送層/蛍光発光層/電子輸送層(/電子注入層)
(i)(正孔注入層/)第1正孔輸送層/第2正孔輸送層/蛍光発光層/第1電子輸送層/第2電子輸送層(/電子注入層)
(j)(正孔注入層/)正孔輸送層/蛍光発光層/正孔阻止層/電子輸送層(/電子注入層)
(k)(正孔注入層/)正孔輸送層/蛍光発光層/励起子阻止層/電子輸送層(/電子注入層)
(l)(正孔注入層/)第1正孔輸送層/第2正孔輸送層/第1蛍光発光層/第2蛍光発光層/第1電子輸送層/第2電子輸送層(/電子注入層)
(m)(正孔注入層/)第1正孔輸送層/第2正孔輸送層/第3正孔輸送層/第1蛍光発光層/第2蛍光発光層/第1電子輸送層/第2電子輸送層(/電子注入層)
(n)(正孔注入層/)第1正孔輸送層/第2正孔輸送層/第3正孔輸送層/蛍光発光層/第1電子輸送層/第2電子輸送層(/電子注入層)
For example, as a typical element configuration of a simple organic EL element, the following element configuration can be mentioned.
(1) Anode/Light-emitting unit/Cathode Further, the light-emitting unit may be a multilayer type having a plurality of phosphorescence-emitting layers or fluorescent light-emitting layers. A space layer may be provided for the purpose of preventing excitons from diffusing into the fluorescent light emitting layer. A typical layer structure of a simple light emitting unit is shown below. The presence or absence of layers in parentheses is optional.
(a) (Hole injection layer/) Hole transport layer/Fluorescence emitting layer/Electron transport layer (/Electron injection layer)
(b) (Hole injection layer/) Hole transport layer/First fluorescent layer/Second fluorescent layer/Electron transport layer (/Electron injection layer)
(c) (Hole injection layer/) Hole transport layer/Phosphorescent layer/Space layer/Fluorescent layer/Electron transport layer (/Electron injection layer)
(d) (Hole injection layer/) Hole transport layer/First phosphorescent layer/Second phosphorescent layer/Space layer/Fluorescent layer/Electron transport layer (/Electron injection layer)
(e) (Hole injection layer/) Hole transport layer/Phosphorescent layer/Space layer/First fluorescent layer/Second fluorescent layer/Electron transport layer (/Electron injection layer)
(f) (Hole injection layer/) Hole transport layer/Electron blocking layer/Fluorescence emitting layer/Electron transport layer (/Electron injection layer)
(g) (Hole injection layer/) Hole transport layer/Exciton blocking layer/Fluorescence emitting layer/Electron transport layer (/Electron injection layer)
(h) (Hole injection layer/) First hole transport layer/Second hole transport layer/Fluorescence emitting layer/Electron transport layer (/Electron injection layer)
(i) (Hole injection layer/) First hole transport layer/Second hole transport layer/Fluorescence emitting layer/First electron transport layer/Second electron transport layer (/Electron injection layer)
(j) (Hole injection layer/) Hole transport layer/Fluorescence emitting layer/Hole blocking layer/Electron transport layer (/Electron injection layer)
(k) (Hole injection layer/) Hole transport layer/Fluorescence emitting layer/Exciton blocking layer/Electron transport layer (/Electron injection layer)
(l) (Hole injection layer/) First hole transport layer/Second hole transport layer/First fluorescent light emitting layer/Second fluorescent light emitting layer/First electron transport layer/Second electron transport layer (/Electron injection layer)
(m) (Hole injection layer/) First hole transport layer/Second hole transport layer/Third hole transport layer/First fluorescent layer/Second fluorescent layer/First electron transport layer/First 2 Electron transport layer (/electron injection layer)
(n) (Hole injection layer/) First hole transport layer/Second hole transport layer/Third hole transport layer/Fluorescence emitting layer/First electron transport layer/Second electron transport layer (/Electron injection layer layer)

 上記各燐光又は蛍光発光層は、それぞれ互いに異なる発光色を示すものとすることができる。具体的には、上記発光ユニット(d)において、(正孔注入層/)正孔輸送層/第1燐光発光層(赤色発光)/第2燐光発光層(緑色発光)/スペース層/蛍光発光層(青色発光)/電子輸送層といった層構成等が挙げられる。
 なお、各発光層と正孔輸送層又はスペース層との間には、適宜、電子阻止層を設けてもよい。また、各発光層と電子輸送層との間には、適宜、正孔阻止層を設けてもよい。電子阻止層や正孔阻止層を設けることで、電子又は正孔を発光層内に閉じ込めて、発光層における電荷の再結合確率を高め、発光効率を向上させることができる。
Each of the phosphorescent or fluorescent light-emitting layers may emit light of a different color from each other. Specifically, in the light emitting unit (d), (hole injection layer/) hole transport layer/first phosphorescent layer (red light emitting layer)/second phosphorescent light emitting layer (green light emitting layer)/space layer/fluorescent light emitting layer. Examples include a layer structure such as a layer (blue light emitting)/electron transport layer.
Note that an electron blocking layer may be provided between each light emitting layer and the hole transport layer or space layer as appropriate. Further, a hole blocking layer may be provided between each light emitting layer and the electron transport layer as appropriate. By providing an electron blocking layer or a hole blocking layer, it is possible to confine electrons or holes within the light emitting layer, increase the probability of charge recombination in the light emitting layer, and improve luminous efficiency.

 タンデム型有機EL素子の代表的な素子構成としては、以下の素子構成を挙げることができる。
(2)陽極/第1発光ユニット/中間層/第2発光ユニット/陰極
 ここで、上記第1発光ユニット及び第2発光ユニットとしては、例えば、それぞれ独立に上述の発光ユニットから選択することができる。
 上記中間層は、一般的に、中間電極、中間導電層、電荷発生層、電子引抜層、接続層、中間絶縁層とも呼ばれ、第1発光ユニットに電子を、第2発光ユニットに正孔を供給する、公知の材料構成を用いることができる。
Typical device configurations of tandem type organic EL devices include the following device configurations.
(2) Anode/first light emitting unit/intermediate layer/second light emitting unit/cathode Here, the first light emitting unit and the second light emitting unit can be independently selected from the above light emitting units, for example. .
The intermediate layer is generally also called an intermediate electrode, intermediate conductive layer, charge generation layer, electron extraction layer, connection layer, or intermediate insulating layer, and supplies electrons to the first light emitting unit and holes to the second light emitting unit. Any known material configuration can be used.

 図1は本発明の有機EL素子の構成の一例を示す概略図である。有機EL素子1は、基板2、陽極3、陰極4、及び該陽極3と陰極4との間に配置された発光ユニット10を有する。発光ユニット10は、発光層5を有する。発光層5と陽極3との間に正孔輸送帯域6(正孔注入層、正孔輸送層等)、発光層5と陰極4との間に電子輸送帯域7(電子注入層、電子輸送層等)を有する。また、発光層5の陽極3側に電子阻止層(図示せず)を、発光層5の陰極4側に正孔阻止層(図示せず)を、それぞれ設けてもよい。これにより、電子や正孔を発光層5に閉じ込めて、発光層5における励起子の生成効率をさらに高めることができる。 FIG. 1 is a schematic diagram showing an example of the configuration of an organic EL element of the present invention. The organic EL element 1 includes a substrate 2, an anode 3, a cathode 4, and a light emitting unit 10 disposed between the anode 3 and the cathode 4. The light emitting unit 10 has a light emitting layer 5. A hole transport zone 6 (hole injection layer, hole transport layer, etc.) is formed between the light emitting layer 5 and the anode 3, and an electron transport zone 7 (electron injection layer, electron transport layer, etc.) is formed between the light emitting layer 5 and the cathode 4. etc.). Further, an electron blocking layer (not shown) may be provided on the anode 3 side of the light emitting layer 5, and a hole blocking layer (not shown) may be provided on the cathode 4 side of the light emitting layer 5. Thereby, electrons and holes can be confined in the light-emitting layer 5, and the efficiency of exciton generation in the light-emitting layer 5 can be further increased.

 図2は、本発明の有機EL素子の他の構成を示す概略図である。有機EL素子11は、基板2、陽極3、陰極4、及び該陽極3と陰極4との間に配置された発光ユニット20を有する。発光ユニット20は、発光層5を有する。陽極3と発光層5の間に配置された正孔輸送帯域は、正孔注入層6a、第1正孔輸送層6b及び第2正孔輸送層6cから形成されている。また、発光層5と陰極4の間に配置された電子輸送帯域は、第1電子輸送層7a及び第2電子輸送層7bから形成されている。 FIG. 2 is a schematic diagram showing another configuration of the organic EL element of the present invention. The organic EL element 11 includes a substrate 2, an anode 3, a cathode 4, and a light emitting unit 20 disposed between the anode 3 and the cathode 4. The light emitting unit 20 has a light emitting layer 5. The hole transport zone disposed between the anode 3 and the light emitting layer 5 is formed of a hole injection layer 6a, a first hole transport layer 6b, and a second hole transport layer 6c. Further, the electron transport zone arranged between the light emitting layer 5 and the cathode 4 is formed from the first electron transport layer 7a and the second electron transport layer 7b.

 図3は、本発明の有機EL素子の他の構成を示す概略図である。有機EL素子12は、基板2、陽極3、陰極4、及び該陽極3と陰極4との間に配置された発光ユニット30を有する。発光ユニット30は、第1発光層5aと第2発光層5bを有する。陽極3と第1発光層5aの間に配置された正孔輸送帯域は、正孔注入層6a、第1正孔輸送層6b、及び第2正孔輸送層6cから形成されている。また、第2発光層5bと陰極4の間に配置された電子輸送帯域は、第1電子輸送層7a及び第2電子輸送層7bから形成されている。 FIG. 3 is a schematic diagram showing another configuration of the organic EL element of the present invention. The organic EL element 12 includes a substrate 2, an anode 3, a cathode 4, and a light emitting unit 30 disposed between the anode 3 and the cathode 4. The light emitting unit 30 has a first light emitting layer 5a and a second light emitting layer 5b. The hole transport zone disposed between the anode 3 and the first light emitting layer 5a is formed of a hole injection layer 6a, a first hole transport layer 6b, and a second hole transport layer 6c. Further, the electron transport zone arranged between the second light emitting layer 5b and the cathode 4 is formed from the first electron transport layer 7a and the second electron transport layer 7b.

 なお、本発明において、蛍光ドーパント材料(蛍光発光材料)と組み合わされたホストを蛍光ホストと称し、燐光ドーパント材料と組み合わされたホストを燐光ホストと称する。蛍光ホストと燐光ホストは分子構造のみにより区分されるものではない。即ち、燐光ホストとは、燐光ドーパントを含有する燐光発光層を形成する材料を意味し、蛍光発光層を形成する材料として利用できないことを意味しているわけではない。蛍光ホストについても同様である。 In the present invention, a host combined with a fluorescent dopant material (fluorescent material) is referred to as a fluorescent host, and a host combined with a phosphorescent dopant material is referred to as a phosphorescent host. Fluorescent hosts and phosphorescent hosts are not distinguished only by molecular structure. That is, the phosphorescent host refers to a material containing a phosphorescent dopant that forms a phosphorescent layer, and does not mean that it cannot be used as a material to form a fluorescent layer. The same applies to fluorescent hosts.

基板
 基板は、有機EL素子の支持体として用いられる。基板としては、例えば、ガラス、石英、プラスチックなどの板を用いることができる。また、可撓性基板を用いてもよい。可撓性基板としては、例えば、ポリイミド、ポリカーボネート、ポリアリレート、ポリエーテルスルフォン、ポリプロピレン、ポリエステル、ポリフッ化ビニル、ポリ塩化ビニルからなるプラスチック基板等が挙げられる。また、無機蒸着フィルムを用いることもできる。
Substrate The substrate is used as a support for the organic EL element. As the substrate, for example, a plate of glass, quartz, plastic, etc. can be used. Alternatively, a flexible substrate may be used. Examples of the flexible substrate include plastic substrates made of polyimide, polycarbonate, polyarylate, polyethersulfone, polypropylene, polyester, polyvinyl fluoride, and polyvinyl chloride. Moreover, an inorganic vapor-deposited film can also be used.

陽極
 基板上に形成される陽極には、仕事関数の大きい(具体的には4.0eV以上)金属、合金、電気伝導性化合物、およびこれらの混合物などを用いることが好ましい。具体的には、例えば、酸化インジウム-酸化スズ(ITO:Indium Tin Oxide)、珪素もしくは酸化珪素を含有した酸化インジウム-酸化スズ、酸化インジウム-酸化亜鉛、酸化タングステンおよび酸化亜鉛を含有した酸化インジウム、グラフェン等が挙げられる。この他、金(Au)、白金(Pt)、ニッケル(Ni)、タングステン(W)、クロム(Cr)、モリブデン(Mo)、鉄(Fe)、コバルト(Co)、銅(Cu)、パラジウム(Pd)、チタン(Ti)、または前記金属の窒化物(例えば、窒化チタン)等が挙げられる。
Anode It is preferable to use a metal, an alloy, an electrically conductive compound, a mixture thereof, or the like having a large work function (specifically, 4.0 eV or more) for the anode formed on the substrate. Specifically, for example, indium oxide-tin oxide (ITO), indium oxide-tin oxide containing silicon or silicon oxide, indium oxide-zinc oxide, indium oxide containing tungsten oxide and zinc oxide, Examples include graphene. In addition, gold (Au), platinum (Pt), nickel (Ni), tungsten (W), chromium (Cr), molybdenum (Mo), iron (Fe), cobalt (Co), copper (Cu), palladium ( Pd), titanium (Ti), or nitrides of the above metals (eg, titanium nitride).

 これらの材料は、通常、スパッタリング法により成膜される。例えば、酸化インジウム-酸化亜鉛は、酸化インジウムに対し1~10wt%の酸化亜鉛を加えたターゲットを、酸化タングステンおよび酸化亜鉛を含有した酸化インジウムは、酸化インジウムに対し酸化タングステンを0.5~5wt%、酸化亜鉛を0.1~1wt%含有したターゲットを用いることにより、スパッタリング法で形成することができる。その他、真空蒸着法、塗布法、インクジェット法、スピンコート法などにより作製してもよい。 These materials are usually deposited using a sputtering method. For example, for indium oxide-zinc oxide, use a target in which 1 to 10 wt% of zinc oxide is added to indium oxide, and for indium oxide containing tungsten oxide and zinc oxide, 0.5 to 5 wt% of tungsten oxide is added to indium oxide. %, and by using a target containing 0.1 to 1 wt % zinc oxide, it can be formed by a sputtering method. In addition, it may be produced by a vacuum evaporation method, a coating method, an inkjet method, a spin coating method, or the like.

正孔輸送帯域
 上述したように、前記有機層が前記陽極と前記発光層の間に正孔輸送帯域を含んでいてもよい。正孔輸送帯域は、正孔注入層、正孔輸送層、電子阻止層等から構成される。正孔輸送帯域が発明化合物を含むことが好ましい。正孔輸送層を構成するこれらの層のうち少なくとも一つの層に発明化合物を含むことが好ましく、特に正孔輸送層に発明化合物を含むことがより好ましい。
Hole Transport Zone As mentioned above, the organic layer may include a hole transport zone between the anode and the light emitting layer. The hole transport zone is composed of a hole injection layer, a hole transport layer, an electron blocking layer, and the like. Preferably, the hole transport zone contains the inventive compound. It is preferable that at least one of these layers constituting the hole transport layer contains the invention compound, and it is particularly preferable that the hole transport layer contains the invention compound.

 陽極に接して形成される正孔注入層は、陽極の仕事関数に関係なく正孔注入が容易である材料を用いて形成されるため、電極材料として一般的に使用される材料(例えば、金属、合金、電気伝導性化合物、およびこれらの混合物、元素周期表の第1族または第2族に属する元素)を用いることができる。
 仕事関数の小さい材料である、元素周期表の第1族または第2族に属する元素、即ちリチウム(Li)やセシウム(Cs)等のアルカリ金属、およびマグネシウム(Mg)、カルシウム(Ca)、ストロンチウム(Sr)等のアルカリ土類金属、およびこれらを含む合金(例えば、MgAg、AlLi)、ユーロピウム(Eu)、イッテルビウム(Yb)等の希土類金属およびこれらを含む合金等を用いることもできる。なお、アルカリ金属、アルカリ土類金属、およびこれらを含む合金を用いて陽極を形成する場合には、真空蒸着法やスパッタリング法を用いることができる。さらに、銀ペーストなどを用いる場合には、塗布法やインクジェット法などを用いることができる。
The hole injection layer formed in contact with the anode is formed using a material that can easily inject holes regardless of the work function of the anode. , alloys, electrically conductive compounds, mixtures thereof, and elements belonging to Group 1 or Group 2 of the Periodic Table of Elements).
Elements belonging to Group 1 or Group 2 of the periodic table, which are materials with a small work function, namely alkali metals such as lithium (Li) and cesium (Cs), as well as magnesium (Mg), calcium (Ca), and strontium. Alkaline earth metals such as (Sr), alloys containing these (for example, MgAg, AlLi), rare earth metals such as europium (Eu), ytterbium (Yb), alloys containing these, etc. can also be used. In addition, when forming an anode using an alkali metal, an alkaline earth metal, or an alloy containing these, a vacuum evaporation method or a sputtering method can be used. Furthermore, when silver paste or the like is used, a coating method, an inkjet method, etc. can be used.

正孔注入層
 正孔注入層は、正孔注入性の高い材料(正孔注入性材料)を含む層であり、陽極と発光層の間、又は、存在する場合には、正孔輸送層と陽極の間に形成される。
Hole injection layer The hole injection layer is a layer containing a material with high hole injection property (hole injection material), and is located between the anode and the light emitting layer or, if present, with the hole transport layer. Formed between the anodes.

 発明化合物以外の正孔注入層材料としては、モリブデン酸化物、チタン酸化物、バナジウム酸化物、レニウム酸化物、ルテニウム酸化物、クロム酸化物、ジルコニウム酸化物、ハフニウム酸化物、タンタル酸化物、銀酸化物、タングステン酸化物、マンガン酸化物等を用いることができる。 Hole injection layer materials other than the invention compounds include molybdenum oxide, titanium oxide, vanadium oxide, rhenium oxide, ruthenium oxide, chromium oxide, zirconium oxide, hafnium oxide, tantalum oxide, and silver oxide. oxide, tungsten oxide, manganese oxide, etc. can be used.

 低分子の有機化合物である4,4’,4’’-トリス(N,N-ジフェニルアミノ)トリフェニルアミン(略称:TDATA)、4,4’,4’’-トリス[N-(3-メチルフェニル)-N-フェニルアミノ]トリフェニルアミン(略称:MTDATA)、4,4’-ビス[N-(4-ジフェニルアミノフェニル)-N-フェニルアミノ]ビフェニル(略称:DPAB)、4,4’-ビス(N-{4-[N’-(3-メチルフェニル)-N’-フェニルアミノ]フェニル}-N-フェニルアミノ)ビフェニル(略称:DNTPD)、1,3,5-トリス[N-(4-ジフェニルアミノフェニル)-N-フェニルアミノ]ベンゼン(略称:DPA3B)、3-[N-(9-フェニルカルバゾール-3-イル)-N-フェニルアミノ]-9-フェニルカルバゾール(略称:PCzPCA1)、3,6-ビス[N-(9-フェニルカルバゾール-3-イル)-N-フェニルアミノ]-9-フェニルカルバゾール(略称:PCzPCA2)、3-[N-(1-ナフチル)-N-(9-フェニルカルバゾール-3-イル)アミノ]-9-フェニルカルバゾール(略称:PCzPCN1)等の芳香族アミン化合物等も正孔注入層材料として挙げられる。 4,4',4''-tris(N,N-diphenylamino)triphenylamine (abbreviation: TDATA), 4,4',4''-tris[N-(3- methylphenyl)-N-phenylamino]triphenylamine (abbreviation: MTDATA), 4,4'-bis[N-(4-diphenylaminophenyl)-N-phenylamino]biphenyl (abbreviation: DPAB), 4,4 '-bis(N-{4-[N'-(3-methylphenyl)-N'-phenylamino]phenyl}-N-phenylamino)biphenyl (abbreviation: DNTPD), 1,3,5-tris[N -(4-diphenylaminophenyl)-N-phenylamino]benzene (abbreviation: DPA3B), 3-[N-(9-phenylcarbazol-3-yl)-N-phenylamino]-9-phenylcarbazole (abbreviation: PCzPCA1), 3,6-bis[N-(9-phenylcarbazol-3-yl)-N-phenylamino]-9-phenylcarbazole (abbreviation: PCzPCA2), 3-[N-(1-naphthyl)-N Aromatic amine compounds such as -(9-phenylcarbazol-3-yl)amino]-9-phenylcarbazole (abbreviation: PCzPCN1) are also exemplified as hole injection layer materials.

 高分子化合物(オリゴマー、デンドリマー、ポリマー等)を用いることもできる。例えば、ポリ(N-ビニルカルバゾール)(略称:PVK)、ポリ(4-ビニルトリフェニルアミン)(略称:PVTPA)、ポリ[N-(4-{N’-[4-(4-ジフェニルアミノ)フェニル]フェニル-N’-フェニルアミノ}フェニル)メタクリルアミド](略称:PTPDMA)、ポリ[N,N’-ビス(4-ブチルフェニル)-N,N’-ビス(フェニル)ベンジジン](略称:Poly-TPD)などの高分子化合物が挙げられる。また、ポリ(3,4-エチレンジオキシチオフェン)/ポリ(スチレンスルホン酸)(PEDOT/PSS)、ポリアニリン/ポリ(スチレンスルホン酸)(PAni/PSS)等の酸を添加した高分子化合物を用いることもできる。 High molecular compounds (oligomers, dendrimers, polymers, etc.) can also be used. For example, poly(N-vinylcarbazole) (abbreviation: PVK), poly(4-vinyltriphenylamine) (abbreviation: PVTPA), poly[N-(4-{N'-[4-(4-diphenylamino) phenyl]phenyl-N'-phenylamino}phenyl) methacrylamide] (abbreviation: PTPDMA), poly[N,N'-bis(4-butylphenyl)-N,N'-bis(phenyl)benzidine] (abbreviation: Polymer compounds such as Poly-TPD) can be mentioned. Additionally, a polymer compound to which an acid is added, such as poly(3,4-ethylenedioxythiophene)/poly(styrene sulfonic acid) (PEDOT/PSS) or polyaniline/poly(styrene sulfonic acid) (PAni/PSS), is used. You can also do that.

 さらに、下記式(K)で表されるヘキサアザトリフェニレン(HAT)化合物などのアクセプター材料を用いることも好ましい。 Further, it is also preferable to use an acceptor material such as a hexaazatriphenylene (HAT) compound represented by the following formula (K).

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000242
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000242

(上記式中、R221~R226は、それぞれ独立にシアノ基、-CONH、カルボキシル基、又は-COOR227(R227は炭素数1~20のアルキル基又は炭素数3~20のシクロアルキル基を表す)を表す。また、R221及びR222、R223及びR224、及びR225及びR226から選ばれる隣接する2つが互いに結合して-CO-O-CO-で示される基を形成してもよい。)
 R227としては、メチル基、エチル基、n-プロピル基、イソプロピル基、n-ブチル基、イソブチル基、t-ブチル基、シクロペンチル基、シクロヘキシル基等が挙げられる。
(In the above formula, R 221 to R 226 are each independently a cyano group, -CONH 2 , a carboxyl group, or -COOR 227 (R 227 is an alkyl group having 1 to 20 carbon atoms or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 20 carbon atoms) In addition, two adjacent groups selected from R 221 and R 222 , R 223 and R 224 , and R 225 and R 226 bond to each other to form a group represented by -CO-O-CO-. may be formed.)
Examples of R 227 include methyl group, ethyl group, n-propyl group, isopropyl group, n-butyl group, isobutyl group, t-butyl group, cyclopentyl group, and cyclohexyl group.

正孔輸送層
 正孔輸送層は、正孔輸送性の高い材料(正孔輸送性材料)を含む層であり、陽極と発光層の間、又は、存在する場合には、正孔注入層と発光層の間に形成される。化合物(1)を単独で又は下記の化合物と組み合わせて正孔輸送層に用いてもよい。
Hole Transport Layer The hole transport layer is a layer containing a material with high hole transport properties (hole transport material), and is located between the anode and the light emitting layer or, if present, between the hole injection layer and the hole transport layer. It is formed between the light emitting layers. Compound (1) may be used alone or in combination with the following compounds in the hole transport layer.

 正孔輸送層は、単層構造でもよく、2以上の層を含む多層構造でもよい。例えば、正孔輸送層は第1正孔輸送層(陽極側)と第2正孔輸送層(陰極側)を含む2層構造であってもよい。つまり、上記正孔輸送帯域が陽極側の第1正孔輸送層と陰極側の第2正孔輸送層を含んでいてもよい。また、正孔輸送層は陽極側から順に第1正孔輸送層と第2正孔輸送層と第3正孔輸送層を含む3層構造であってもよい。つまり、第2正孔輸送層と発光層との間に、第3正孔輸送層が配置されていてもよい。
 本発明の一態様において、前記単層構造の正孔輸送層は発光層に隣接していることが好ましく、また、前記多層構造中の最も陰極に近い正孔輸送層、例えば、上記2層構造の第2正孔輸送層や上記3層構造の第3正孔輸送層は発光層に隣接していることが好ましい。本発明の他の態様において、前記単層構造の正孔輸送層と発光層の間に、又は、前記多層構造中の最も発光層に近い正孔輸送層と発光層の間に、後述する電子阻止層などを介在させてもよい。
 本発明に係る有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子の一態様において、前記第1正孔輸送層及び前記第2正孔輸送層の少なくとも一方が発明化合物を含む。具体的には、前記2層構造の正孔輸送層において、発明化合物は第1正孔輸送層と第2正孔輸送層の一方に含まれていてもよいし、双方に含まれていてもよい。また、他の態様において、上記第1~第3正孔輸送層のうち少なくとも一つが発明化合物を含む。具体的には、上記3層構造の正孔輸送層において、発明化合物は第1~第3正孔輸送層のうち一つのみに含まれていてもよいし、いずれか2つのみに含まれていてもよいし、全てに含まれていてもよい。
 本発明の一態様においては、発明化合物が第2正孔輸送層に含まれるのが好ましく、具体的には、発明化合物が第2正孔輸送層のみに含まれるか、発明化合物が第1正孔輸送層と第2正孔輸送層に含まれるのが好ましい。
The hole transport layer may have a single layer structure or a multilayer structure including two or more layers. For example, the hole transport layer may have a two-layer structure including a first hole transport layer (on the anode side) and a second hole transport layer (on the cathode side). That is, the hole transport zone may include a first hole transport layer on the anode side and a second hole transport layer on the cathode side. Further, the hole transport layer may have a three-layer structure including, in order from the anode side, a first hole transport layer, a second hole transport layer, and a third hole transport layer. That is, the third hole transport layer may be arranged between the second hole transport layer and the light emitting layer.
In one aspect of the present invention, the single-layer structure hole transport layer is preferably adjacent to the light emitting layer, and the hole transport layer closest to the cathode in the multilayer structure is, for example, the two-layer structure The second hole transport layer and the third hole transport layer of the three-layer structure are preferably adjacent to the light emitting layer. In another aspect of the present invention, the below-mentioned electron A blocking layer or the like may be interposed.
In one embodiment of the organic electroluminescent device according to the present invention, at least one of the first hole transport layer and the second hole transport layer contains the inventive compound. Specifically, in the hole transport layer having the two-layer structure, the inventive compound may be contained in one of the first hole transport layer and the second hole transport layer, or may be contained in both. good. Furthermore, in another embodiment, at least one of the first to third hole transport layers contains the inventive compound. Specifically, in the hole transport layer having the three-layer structure, the inventive compound may be contained in only one of the first to third hole transport layers, or may be contained in only any two. It may be included in all items, or it may be included in all items.
In one aspect of the present invention, the inventive compound is preferably contained in the second hole transport layer, and specifically, the inventive compound is contained only in the second hole transport layer, or the inventive compound is contained in the first hole transport layer. It is preferably included in the hole transport layer and the second hole transport layer.

 化合物(1)以外の正孔輸送層材料としては、例えば、芳香族アミン化合物、カルバゾール誘導体、アントラセン誘導体等を使用することができる。
 芳香族アミン化合物としては、例えば、4,4’-ビス[N-(1-ナフチル)-N-フェニルアミノ]ビフェニル(略称:NPB)やN,N’-ビス(3-メチルフェニル)-N,N’-ジフェニル-[1,1’-ビフェニル]-4,4’-ジアミン(略称:TPD)、4-フェニル-4’-(9-フェニルフルオレン-9-イル)トリフェニルアミン(略称:BAFLP)、4,4’-ビス[N-(9,9-ジメチルフルオレン-2-イル)-N-フェニルアミノ]ビフェニル(略称:DFLDPBi)、4,4’,4”-トリス(N,N-ジフェニルアミノ)トリフェニルアミン(略称:TDATA)、4,4’,4”-トリス[N-(3-メチルフェニル)-N-フェニルアミノ]トリフェニルアミン(略称:MTDATA)、及び、4,4’-ビス[N-(スピロ-9,9’-ビフルオレン-2-イル)-N―フェニルアミノ]ビフェニル(略称:BSPB)が挙げられる。上記化合物は、10-6cm/Vs以上の正孔移動度を有する。
As the material for the hole transport layer other than compound (1), for example, aromatic amine compounds, carbazole derivatives, anthracene derivatives, etc. can be used.
Examples of aromatic amine compounds include 4,4'-bis[N-(1-naphthyl)-N-phenylamino]biphenyl (abbreviation: NPB) and N,N'-bis(3-methylphenyl)-N , N'-diphenyl-[1,1'-biphenyl]-4,4'-diamine (abbreviation: TPD), 4-phenyl-4'-(9-phenylfluoren-9-yl)triphenylamine (abbreviation: BAFLP), 4,4'-bis[N-(9,9-dimethylfluoren-2-yl)-N-phenylamino]biphenyl (abbreviation: DFLDPBi), 4,4',4''-tris(N,N -diphenylamino)triphenylamine (abbreviation: TDATA), 4,4',4''-tris[N-(3-methylphenyl)-N-phenylamino]triphenylamine (abbreviation: MTDATA), and 4, Examples include 4'-bis[N-(spiro-9,9'-bifluoren-2-yl)-N-phenylamino]biphenyl (abbreviation: BSPB). The above compound has a hole mobility of 10 −6 cm 2 /Vs or more.

 カルバゾール誘導体としては、例えば、4,4’-ジ(9-カルバゾリル)ビフェニル(略称:CBP)、9-[4-(9-カルバゾリル)フェニル]-10-フェニルアントラセン(略称:CzPA)、及び、9-フェニル-3-[4-(10-フェニル-9-アントリル)フェニル]-9H-カルバゾール(略称:PCzPA)が挙げられる。
 アントラセン誘導体としては、例えば、2-t-ブチル-9,10-ジ(2-ナフチル)アントラセン(略称:t-BuDNA)、9,10-ジ(2-ナフチル)アントラセン(略称:DNA)、及び、9,10-ジフェニルアントラセン(略称:DPAnth)が挙げられる。
 ポリ(N-ビニルカルバゾール)(略称:PVK)やポリ(4-ビニルトリフェニルアミン)(略称:PVTPA)等の高分子化合物を用いることもできる。
 ただし、電子輸送性よりも正孔輸送性の方が高い化合物であれば、上記以外の化合物を用いてもよい。
Examples of carbazole derivatives include 4,4'-di(9-carbazolyl)biphenyl (abbreviation: CBP), 9-[4-(9-carbazolyl)phenyl]-10-phenylanthracene (abbreviation: CzPA), and Examples include 9-phenyl-3-[4-(10-phenyl-9-anthryl)phenyl]-9H-carbazole (abbreviation: PCzPA).
Examples of anthracene derivatives include 2-t-butyl-9,10-di(2-naphthyl)anthracene (abbreviation: t-BuDNA), 9,10-di(2-naphthyl)anthracene (abbreviation: DNA), and , 9,10-diphenylanthracene (abbreviation: DPAnth).
Polymer compounds such as poly(N-vinylcarbazole) (abbreviation: PVK) and poly(4-vinyltriphenylamine) (abbreviation: PVTPA) can also be used.
However, compounds other than those mentioned above may be used as long as they have higher hole transport properties than electron transport properties.

 本発明に係る有機EL素子の一態様において、前記第1正孔輸送層が、下記の式(11)又は式(12)で表される化合物を含む。 In one embodiment of the organic EL device according to the present invention, the first hole transport layer contains a compound represented by the following formula (11) or formula (12).

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000243

[前記式(11)及び式(12)中、
 LA1、LB1、LC1、LA2、LB2、LC2及びLD2は、それぞれ独立に、単結合、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリーレン基、又は置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50の2価の複素環基であり、
 kは、1、2、3又は4であり、
 kが1の場合、LE2は、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリーレン基、又は置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50の2価の複素環基であり、
 kが2、3又は4の場合、2、3又は4個のLE2は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なり、
 kが2、3又は4の場合、複数のLE2は、互いに結合して置換もしくは無置換の単環を形成するか、互いに結合して置換もしくは無置換の縮合環を形成するか、又は互いに結合せず、
 前記単環を形成せず、且つ前記縮合環を形成しないLE2は、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリーレン基、又は置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50の2価の複素環基であり、
 A、B、C、A、B、C、及びDは、それぞれ独立に、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50の複素環基、又は-Si(R’901)(R’902)(R’903)であり、
 R’901、R’902及びR’903は、それぞれ独立に、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基であり、
 R’901が複数存在する場合、複数のR’901は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なり、
 R’902が複数存在する場合、複数のR’902は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なり、
 R’903が複数存在する場合、複数のR’903は、互いに同一であるか、又は異なる。]
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000243

[In the above formula (11) and formula (12),
L A1 , L B1 , L C1 , L A2 , L B2 , L C2 and L D2 are each independently a single bond, a substituted or unsubstituted arylene group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted arylene group is a divalent heterocyclic group having 5 to 50 ring atoms,
k is 1, 2, 3 or 4,
When k is 1, L E2 is a substituted or unsubstituted arylene group having 6 to 50 ring atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted divalent heterocyclic group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
When k is 2, 3 or 4, 2, 3 or 4 L E2 are the same or different,
When k is 2, 3 or 4, the plurality of L E2 's are bonded to each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted monocycle, bonded to each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted condensed ring, or are bonded to each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted fused ring, or are bonded to each other to form a substituted or unsubstituted fused ring, or not combined,
L E2 which does not form a single ring and which does not form a condensed ring is a substituted or unsubstituted arylene group having 6 to 50 ring atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted arylene group having 5 to 50 ring atoms. is a valent heterocyclic group,
A 1 , B 1 , C 1 , A 2 , B 2 , C 2 and D 2 are each independently a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring-forming carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted ring-forming aryl group A heterocyclic group having 5 to 50 atoms, or -Si(R' 901 )(R' 902 )(R' 903 ),
R' 901 , R' 902 and R' 903 are each independently a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
When a plurality of R' 901s exist, the plurality of R' 901s are the same or different,
When a plurality of R' 902s exist, the plurality of R' 902s are the same or different,
When a plurality of R' 903s exist, the plurality of R' 903s are the same or different. ]

 なお、前記第1正孔輸送層は、式(11)及び式(12)で表される化合物を1種含有していてもよいし、式(11)及び式(12)で表される化合物を複数種含有していてもよい。 Note that the first hole transport layer may contain one type of compound represented by formula (11) and formula (12), or may contain one type of compound represented by formula (11) and formula (12). It may contain multiple types of.

 式(11)及び式(12)において、A1、B1、C1、A2、B2、C2、及びD2は、好ましくは、それぞれ独立に、置換もしくは無置換のフェニレン基、置換もしくは無置換のビフェニル基、置換もしくは無置換のターフェニル基、置換もしくは無置換のナフチル基、置換もしくは無置換のフルオレニル基、置換もしくは無置換のジベンソフラニル基、置換もしくは無置換のジベンゾチオフェニル基、及び、置換もしくは無置換のカルバゾリル基から選択される。
 また、より好ましくは、式(11)において、A1、B1及びC1のうち少なくとも一つ、及び、式(12)において、A2、B2、C2及びD2のうち少なくとも一つが、置換もしくは無置換のビフェニル基、置換もしくは無置換のターフェニル基、置換もしくは無置換のナフチル基、置換もしくは無置換のフルオレニル基、置換もしくは無置換のジベンソフラニル基、又は、置換もしくは無置換のジベンゾチオフェニル基、置換もしくは無置換のカルバゾリル基である。
In formulas (11) and (12), A1, B1, C1, A2, B2, C2, and D2 are preferably each independently a substituted or unsubstituted phenylene group, a substituted or unsubstituted biphenyl group, Substituted or unsubstituted terphenyl group, substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group, substituted or unsubstituted fluorenyl group, substituted or unsubstituted dibensofuranyl group, substituted or unsubstituted dibenzothiophenyl group, and substituted or unsubstituted dibenzothiophenyl group. selected from carbazolyl groups.
More preferably, in formula (11), at least one of A1, B1, and C1, and in formula (12), at least one of A2, B2, C2, and D2 is substituted or unsubstituted biphenyl. group, substituted or unsubstituted terphenyl group, substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group, substituted or unsubstituted fluorenyl group, substituted or unsubstituted dibensofuranyl group, or substituted or unsubstituted dibenzothiophenyl group, substituted or unsubstituted It is a substituted carbazolyl group.

 A1、B1、C1、A2、B2、C2、及びD2がとり得るフルオレニル基は、9位に置換基を有していてもよく、例えば、9,9-ジメチルフルオレニル基、9,9-ジフェニルフルオレニル基であってもよい。また、9位の置換基同士で環を形成していてもよく、例えば、9位の置換基同士でフルオレン骨格やキサンテン骨格を形成してもよい。 The fluorenyl groups that A1, B1, C1, A2, B2, C2, and D2 can have may have a substituent at the 9-position, for example, 9,9-dimethylfluorenyl group, 9,9- It may also be a diphenylfluorenyl group. Further, the substituents at the 9-position may form a ring, for example, the substituents at the 9-position may form a fluorene skeleton or a xanthene skeleton.

 LA1、LB1、LC1、LA2、LB2、LC2及びLD2は、好ましくは、それぞれ独立に、単結合、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~12のアリーレン基である。 L A1 , L B1 , L C1 , L A2 , L B2 , L C2 and L D2 are preferably each independently a single bond or a substituted or unsubstituted arylene group having 6 to 12 ring carbon atoms.

 式(11)及び式(12)で表される化合物の具体例としては、例えば、以下の化合物が挙げられる。 Specific examples of the compounds represented by formula (11) and formula (12) include the following compounds.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000244
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000244

発光層のドーパント材料
 発光層は、発光性の高い材料(ドーパント材料)を含む層であり、種々の材料を用いることができる。例えば、蛍光発光材料や燐光発光材料をドーパント材料として用いることができる。蛍光発光材料は一重項励起状態から発光する化合物であり、燐光発光材料は三重項励起状態から発光する化合物である。
 本発明の一態様において、発光層は単一の層である。本発明の他の態様において、発光層は陽極側の第1の発光層と陰極側の第2の発光層とを含む。
Dopant Material of Light Emitting Layer The light emitting layer is a layer containing a highly luminescent material (dopant material), and various materials can be used. For example, a fluorescent material or a phosphorescent material can be used as a dopant material. Fluorescent materials are compounds that emit light from a singlet excited state, and phosphorescent materials are compounds that emit light from a triplet excited state.
In one embodiment of the invention, the emissive layer is a single layer. In another embodiment of the invention, the light emitting layer includes a first light emitting layer on the anode side and a second light emitting layer on the cathode side.

 発光層に用いることができる青色系の蛍光発光材料として、ピレン誘導体、スチリルアミン誘導体、クリセン誘導体、フルオランテン誘導体、フルオレン誘導体、ジアミン誘導体、トリアリールアミン誘導体等が使用できる。具体的には、N,N’-ビス[4-(9H-カルバゾール-9-イル)フェニル]-N,N’-ジフェニルスチルベン-4,4’-ジアミン(略称:YGA2S)、4-(9H-カルバゾール-9-イル)-4’-(10-フェニル-9-アントリル)トリフェニルアミン(略称:YGAPA)、4-(10-フェニル-9-アントリル)-4’-(9-フェニル-9H-カルバゾール-3-イル)トリフェニルアミン(略称:PCBAPA)などが挙げられる。 Pyrene derivatives, styrylamine derivatives, chrysene derivatives, fluoranthene derivatives, fluorene derivatives, diamine derivatives, triarylamine derivatives, etc. can be used as blue fluorescent materials that can be used in the light-emitting layer. Specifically, N,N'-bis[4-(9H-carbazol-9-yl)phenyl]-N,N'-diphenylstilbene-4,4'-diamine (abbreviation: YGA2S), 4-(9H -carbazol-9-yl)-4'-(10-phenyl-9-anthryl)triphenylamine (abbreviation: YGAPA), 4-(10-phenyl-9-anthryl)-4'-(9-phenyl-9H -carbazol-3-yl)triphenylamine (abbreviation: PCBAPA).

 発光層に用いることができる緑色系の蛍光発光材料として、芳香族アミン誘導体等を使用できる。具体的には、N-(9,10-ジフェニル-2-アントリル)-N,9-ジフェニル-9H-カルバゾール-3-アミン(略称:2PCAPA)、N-[9,10-ビス(1,1’-ビフェニル-2-イル)-2-アントリル]-N,9-ジフェニル-9H-カルバゾール-3-アミン(略称:2PCABPhA)、N-(9,10-ジフェニル-2-アントリル)-N,N’,N’-トリフェニル-1,4-フェニレンジアミン(略称:2DPAPA)、N-[9,10-ビス(1,1’-ビフェニル-2-イル)-2-アントリル]-N,N’,N’-トリフェニル-1,4-フェニレンジアミン(略称:2DPABPhA)、N-[9,10-ビス(1,1’-ビフェニル-2-イル)]-N-[4-(9H-カルバゾール-9-イル)フェニル]-N-フェニルアントラセン-2-アミン(略称:2YGABPhA)、N,N,9-トリフェニルアントラセン-9-アミン(略称:DPhAPhA)などが挙げられる。 Aromatic amine derivatives and the like can be used as green fluorescent materials that can be used in the light emitting layer. Specifically, N-(9,10-diphenyl-2-anthryl)-N,9-diphenyl-9H-carbazol-3-amine (abbreviation: 2PCAPA), N-[9,10-bis(1,1 '-biphenyl-2-yl)-2-anthryl]-N,9-diphenyl-9H-carbazol-3-amine (abbreviation: 2PCABPhA), N-(9,10-diphenyl-2-anthryl)-N,N ',N'-triphenyl-1,4-phenylenediamine (abbreviation: 2DPAPA), N-[9,10-bis(1,1'-biphenyl-2-yl)-2-anthryl]-N,N' , N'-triphenyl-1,4-phenylenediamine (abbreviation: 2DPABPhA), N-[9,10-bis(1,1'-biphenyl-2-yl)]-N-[4-(9H-carbazole) -9-yl)phenyl]-N-phenylanthracen-2-amine (abbreviation: 2YGABPhA), N,N,9-triphenylanthracen-9-amine (abbreviation: DPhAPhA), and the like.

 発光層に用いることができる赤色系の蛍光発光材料として、テトラセン誘導体、ジアミン誘導体等が使用できる。具体的には、N,N,N’,N’-テトラキス(4-メチルフェニル)テトラセン-5,11-ジアミン(略称:p-mPhTD)、7,14-ジフェニル-N,N,N’,N’-テトラキス(4-メチルフェニル)アセナフト[1,2-a]フルオランテン-3,10-ジアミン(略称:p-mPhAFD)などが挙げられる。 Tetracene derivatives, diamine derivatives, etc. can be used as red fluorescent materials that can be used in the light emitting layer. Specifically, N,N,N',N'-tetrakis(4-methylphenyl)tetracene-5,11-diamine (abbreviation: p-mPhTD), 7,14-diphenyl-N,N,N', Examples include N'-tetrakis(4-methylphenyl)acenaphtho[1,2-a]fluoranthene-3,10-diamine (abbreviation: p-mPhAFD).

 本発明の一態様において、発光層が蛍光発光材料(蛍光ドーパント材料)を含むことが好ましい。 In one embodiment of the present invention, it is preferable that the light-emitting layer contains a fluorescent material (fluorescent dopant material).

 発光層に用いることができる青色系の燐光発光材料として、イリジウム錯体、オスミウム錯体、白金錯体等の金属錯体が使用される。具体的には、ビス[2-(4’,6’-ジフルオロフェニル)ピリジナト-N,C2’]イリジウム(III)テトラキス(1-ピラゾリル)ボラート(略称:FIr6)、ビス[2-(4’,6’-ジフルオロフェニル)ピリジナト-N,C2’]イリジウム(III)ピコリナート(略称:FIrpic)、ビス[2-(3’,5’ビストリフルオロメチルフェニル)ピリジナト-N,C2’]イリジウム(III)ピコリナート(略称:Ir(CF3ppy)2(pic))、ビス[2-(4’,6’-ジフルオロフェニル)ピリジナト-N,C2’]イリジウム(III)アセチルアセトナート(略称:FIracac)などが挙げられる。 Metal complexes such as iridium complexes, osmium complexes, and platinum complexes are used as blue-based phosphorescent materials that can be used in the light-emitting layer. Specifically, bis[2-(4′,6′-difluorophenyl)pyridinato-N,C2′]iridium(III)tetrakis(1-pyrazolyl)borate (abbreviation: FIr6), bis[2-(4′) , 6'-difluorophenyl)pyridinato-N,C2']iridium(III) picolinate (abbreviation: FIrpic), bis[2-(3',5'bistrifluoromethylphenyl)pyridinato-N,C2']iridium(III) ) picolinate (abbreviation: Ir(CF3ppy)2(pic)), bis[2-(4',6'-difluorophenyl)pyridinato-N,C2']iridium(III) acetylacetonate (abbreviation: FIracac), etc. Can be mentioned.

 発光層に用いることができる緑色系の燐光発光材料として、イリジウム錯体等が使用される。トリス(2-フェニルピリジナト-N,C2’)イリジウム(III)(略称:Ir(ppy)3)、ビス(2-フェニルピリジナト-N,C2’)イリジウム(III)アセチルアセトナート(略称:Ir(ppy)2(acac))、ビス(1,2-ジフェニル-1H-ベンゾイミダゾラト)イリジウム(III)アセチルアセトナート(略称:Ir(pbi)2(acac))、ビス(ベンゾ[h]キノリナト)イリジウム(III)アセチルアセトナート(略称:Ir(bzq)2(acac))などが挙げられる。 An iridium complex or the like is used as a green phosphorescent material that can be used in the light emitting layer. Tris(2-phenylpyridinato-N,C2')iridium(III) (abbreviation: Ir(ppy)3), bis(2-phenylpyridinato-N,C2')iridium(III) acetylacetonate ( Abbreviation: Ir(ppy)2(acac)), bis(1,2-diphenyl-1H-benzimidazolato)iridium(III) acetylacetonate (abbreviation: Ir(pbi)2(acac)), bis(benzo[ h] quinolinato) iridium (III) acetylacetonate (abbreviation: Ir(bzz)2(acac)), and the like.

 発光層に用いることができる赤色系の燐光発光材料として、イリジウム錯体、白金錯体、テルビウム錯体、ユーロピウム錯体等の金属錯体が使用される。具体的には、ビス[2-(2’-ベンゾ[4,5-α]チエニル)ピリジナト-N,C3’]イリジウム(III)アセチルアセトナート(略称:Ir(btp)2(acac))、ビス(1-フェニルイソキノリナト-N,C2’)イリジウム(III)アセチルアセトナート(略称:Ir(piq)2(acac))、(アセチルアセトナート)ビス[2,3-ビス(4-フルオロフェニル)キノキサリナト]イリジウム(III)(略称:Ir(Fdpq)2(acac))、2,3,7,8,12,13,17,18-オクタエチル-21H,23H-ポルフィリン白金(II)(略称:PtOEP)等の有機金属錯体が挙げられる。 Metal complexes such as iridium complexes, platinum complexes, terbium complexes, and europium complexes are used as red-colored phosphorescent materials that can be used in the light-emitting layer. Specifically, bis[2-(2′-benzo[4,5-α]thienyl)pyridinato-N,C3′]iridium(III) acetylacetonate (abbreviation: Ir(btp)2(acac)), Bis(1-phenylisoquinolinato-N,C2')iridium(III) acetylacetonate (abbreviation: Ir(piq)2(acac)), (acetylacetonato)bis[2,3-bis(4-fluoro) phenyl)quinoxalinato]iridium(III) (abbreviation: Ir(Fdpq)2(acac)), 2,3,7,8,12,13,17,18-octaethyl-21H,23H-porphyrin platinum(II) (abbreviation) :PtOEP) and other organometallic complexes.

 また、トリス(アセチルアセトナート)(モノフェナントロリン)テルビウム(III)(略称:Tb(acac)3(Phen))、トリス(1,3-ジフェニル-1,3-プロパンジオナト)(モノフェナントロリン)ユーロピウム(III)(略称:Eu(DBM)3(Phen))、トリス[1-(2-テノイル)-3,3,3-トリフルオロアセトナト](モノフェナントロリン)ユーロピウム(III)(略称:Eu(TTA)3(Phen))等の希土類金属錯体は、希土類金属イオンからの発光(異なる多重度間の電子遷移)であるため、燐光発光材料として用いることができる。 Also, tris(acetylacetonato)(monophenanthroline)terbium(III) (abbreviation: Tb(acac)3(Phen)), tris(1,3-diphenyl-1,3-propanedionato)(monophenanthroline) europium (III) (abbreviation: Eu(DBM)3(Phen)), tris[1-(2-thenoyl)-3,3,3-trifluoroacetonato](monophenanthroline) europium(III) (abbreviation: Eu( Rare earth metal complexes such as TTA)3(Phen) can be used as phosphorescent materials because they emit light from rare earth metal ions (electronic transition between different multiplicities).

発光層のホスト材料
 発光層は、上述したドーパント材料を他の材料(ホスト材料)に分散させた構成としてもよい。ドーパント材料よりも最低空軌道準位(LUMO準位)が高く、最高占有軌道準位(HOMO準位)が低い材料を用いることが好ましい。
Host Material of Light Emitting Layer The light emitting layer may have a structure in which the above-mentioned dopant material is dispersed in another material (host material). It is preferable to use a material that has a higher lowest unoccupied orbital level (LUMO level) and a lower highest occupied orbital level (HOMO level) than the dopant material.

 ホスト材料としては、例えば
(1)アルミニウム錯体、ベリリウム錯体、又は亜鉛錯体等の金属錯体、
(2)オキサジアゾール誘導体、ベンゾイミダゾール誘導体、又はフェナントロリン誘導体等の複素環化合物、
(3)カルバゾール誘導体、アントラセン誘導体、フェナントレン誘導体、ピレン誘導体、又はクリセン誘導体等の縮合芳香族化合物、
(4)トリアリールアミン誘導体又は縮合多環芳香族アミン誘導体等の芳香族アミン化合物が使用される。
Examples of host materials include (1) metal complexes such as aluminum complexes, beryllium complexes, or zinc complexes;
(2) Heterocyclic compounds such as oxadiazole derivatives, benzimidazole derivatives, or phenanthroline derivatives,
(3) fused aromatic compounds such as carbazole derivatives, anthracene derivatives, phenanthrene derivatives, pyrene derivatives, or chrysene derivatives,
(4) Aromatic amine compounds such as triarylamine derivatives or fused polycyclic aromatic amine derivatives are used.

 例えば、トリス(8-キノリノラト)アルミニウム(III)(略称:Alq)、トリス(4-メチル-8-キノリノラト)アルミニウム(III)(略称:Almq3)、ビス(10-ヒドロキシベンゾ[h]キノリナト)ベリリウム(II)(略称:BeBq2)、ビス(2-メチル-8-キノリノラト)(4-フェニルフェノラト)アルミニウム(III)(略称:BAlq)、ビス(8-キノリノラト)亜鉛(II)(略称:Znq)、ビス[2-(2-ベンゾオキサゾリル)フェノラト]亜鉛(II)(略称:ZnPBO)、ビス[2-(2-ベンゾチアゾリル)フェノラト]亜鉛(II)(略称:ZnBTZ)などの金属錯体;
 2-(4-ビフェニリル)-5-(4-tert-ブチルフェニル)-1,3,4-オキサジアゾール(略称:PBD)、1,3-ビス[5-(p-tert-ブチルフェニル)-1,3,4-オキサジアゾール-2-イル]ベンゼン(略称:OXD-7)、3-(4-ビフェニリル)-4-フェニル-5-(4-tert-ブチルフェニル)-1,2,4-トリアゾール(略称:TAZ)、2,2’,2’’-(1,3,5-ベンゼントリイル)トリス(1-フェニル-1H-ベンゾイミダゾール)(略称:TPBI)、バソフェナントロリン(略称:BPhen)、バソキュプロイン(略称:BCP)などの複素環化合物;
 9-[4-(10-フェニル-9-アントリル)フェニル]-9H-カルバゾール(略称:CzPA)、3,6-ジフェニル-9-[4-(10-フェニル-9-アントリル)フェニル]-9H-カルバゾール(略称:DPCzPA)、9,10-ビス(3,5-ジフェニルフェニル)アントラセン(略称:DPPA)、9,10-ジ(2-ナフチル)アントラセン(略称:DNA)、2-tert-ブチル-9,10-ジ(2-ナフチル)アントラセン(略称:t-BuDNA)、9,9’-ビアントリル(略称:BANT)、9,9’-(スチルベン-3,3’-ジイル)ジフェナントレン(略称:DPNS)、9,9’-(スチルベン-4,4’-ジイル)ジフェナントレン(略称:DPNS2)、3,3’,3’’-(ベンゼン-1,3,5-トリイル)トリピレン(略称:TPB3)、9,10-ジフェニルアントラセン(略称:DPAnth)、6,12-ジメトキシ-5,11-ジフェニルクリセンなどの縮合芳香族化合物;及び
 N,N-ジフェニル-9-[4-(10-フェニル-9-アントリル)フェニル]-9H-カルバゾール-3-アミン(略称:CzA1PA)、4-(10-フェニル-9-アントリル)トリフェニルアミン(略称:DPhPA)、N,9-ジフェニル-N-[4-(10-フェニル-9-アントリル)フェニル]-9H-カルバゾール-3-アミン(略称:PCAPA)、N,9-ジフェニル-N-{4-[4-(10-フェニル-9-アントリル)フェニル]フェニル}-9H-カルバゾール-3-アミン(略称:PCAPBA)、N-(9,10-ジフェニル-2-アントリル)-N,9-ジフェニル-9H-カルバゾール-3-アミン(略称:2PCAPA)、4,4’-ビス[N-(1-ナフチル)-N-フェニルアミノ]ビフェニル(略称:NPBまたはα-NPD)、N,N’-ビス(3-メチルフェニル)-N,N’-ジフェニル-[1,1’-ビフェニル]-4,4’-ジアミン(略称:TPD)、4,4’-ビス[N-(9,9-ジメチルフルオレン-2-イル)-N-フェニルアミノ]ビフェニル(略称:DFLDPBi)、4,4’-ビス[N-(スピロ-9,9’-ビフルオレン-2-イル)-N―フェニルアミノ]ビフェニル(略称:BSPB)などの芳香族アミン化合物を用いることができる。ホスト材料は複数種用いてもよい。
For example, tris(8-quinolinolato)aluminum(III) (abbreviation: Alq), tris(4-methyl-8-quinolinolato)aluminum(III) (abbreviation: Almq3), bis(10-hydroxybenzo[h]quinolinato)beryllium (II) (abbreviation: BeBq2), bis(2-methyl-8-quinolinolato)(4-phenylphenolato)aluminum(III) (abbreviation: BAlq), bis(8-quinolinolato)zinc(II) (abbreviation: Znq) ), bis[2-(2-benzoxazolyl)phenolato]zinc(II) (abbreviation: ZnPBO), bis[2-(2-benzothiazolyl)phenolato]zinc(II) (abbreviation: ZnBTZ), etc. ;
2-(4-biphenylyl)-5-(4-tert-butylphenyl)-1,3,4-oxadiazole (abbreviation: PBD), 1,3-bis[5-(p-tert-butylphenyl) -1,3,4-oxadiazol-2-yl]benzene (abbreviation: OXD-7), 3-(4-biphenylyl)-4-phenyl-5-(4-tert-butylphenyl)-1,2 , 4-triazole (abbreviation: TAZ), 2,2',2''-(1,3,5-benzentriyl)tris(1-phenyl-1H-benzimidazole) (abbreviation: TPBI), bathophenanthroline ( Heterocyclic compounds such as abbreviation: BPhen), bathocuproine (abbreviation: BCP);
9-[4-(10-phenyl-9-anthryl)phenyl]-9H-carbazole (abbreviation: CzPA), 3,6-diphenyl-9-[4-(10-phenyl-9-anthryl)phenyl]-9H -Carbazole (abbreviation: DPCzPA), 9,10-bis(3,5-diphenylphenyl)anthracene (abbreviation: DPPA), 9,10-di(2-naphthyl)anthracene (abbreviation: DNA), 2-tert-butyl -9,10-di(2-naphthyl)anthracene (abbreviation: t-BuDNA), 9,9'-bianthryl (abbreviation: BANT), 9,9'-(stilbene-3,3'-diyl)diphenanthrene ( Abbreviation: DPNS), 9,9'-(stilbene-4,4'-diyl)diphenanthrene (abbreviation: DPNS2), 3,3',3''-(benzene-1,3,5-triyl)tripyrene ( Condensed aromatic compounds such as abbreviation: TPB3), 9,10-diphenylanthracene (abbreviation: DPAnth), 6,12-dimethoxy-5,11-diphenylchrysene; and N,N-diphenyl-9-[4-(10 -Phenyl-9-anthryl)phenyl]-9H-carbazol-3-amine (abbreviation: CzA1PA), 4-(10-phenyl-9-anthryl)triphenylamine (abbreviation: DPhPA), N,9-diphenyl-N -[4-(10-phenyl-9-anthryl)phenyl]-9H-carbazol-3-amine (abbreviation: PCAPA), N,9-diphenyl-N-{4-[4-(10-phenyl-9-) anthryl)phenyl]phenyl}-9H-carbazol-3-amine (abbreviation: PCAPBA), N-(9,10-diphenyl-2-anthryl)-N,9-diphenyl-9H-carbazol-3-amine (abbreviation: 2PCAPA), 4,4'-bis[N-(1-naphthyl)-N-phenylamino]biphenyl (abbreviation: NPB or α-NPD), N,N'-bis(3-methylphenyl)-N,N '-Diphenyl-[1,1'-biphenyl]-4,4'-diamine (abbreviation: TPD), 4,4'-bis[N-(9,9-dimethylfluoren-2-yl)-N-phenyl Aromatic amine compounds such as amino]biphenyl (abbreviation: DFLDPBi), 4,4'-bis[N-(spiro-9,9'-bifluoren-2-yl)-N-phenylamino]biphenyl (abbreviation: BSPB) can be used. Multiple types of host materials may be used.

 特に、青色蛍光素子の場合には、下記のアントラセン化合物をホスト材料として用いることが好ましい。 In particular, in the case of a blue fluorescent element, it is preferable to use the following anthracene compound as a host material.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000245
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000245

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000246
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000246

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000247
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000247

 本発明に係る有機EL素子の一態様において、発光層が第1の発光層と第2の発光層とを含む場合、第1の発光層を構成する成分の少なくとも一つが第2の発光層を構成する成分とは異なる。例えば、第1の発光層に含まれるドーパント材料が第2の発光層に含まれるドーパント材料と異なる態様や、第1の発光層に含まれるホスト材料が第2の発光層に含まれるホスト材料と異なる態様が挙げられる。 In one embodiment of the organic EL element according to the present invention, when the light-emitting layer includes a first light-emitting layer and a second light-emitting layer, at least one of the components constituting the first light-emitting layer contains the second light-emitting layer. It is different from the constituent components. For example, the dopant material contained in the first light emitting layer may be different from the dopant material contained in the second light emitting layer, or the host material contained in the first light emitting layer may be different from the host material contained in the second light emitting layer. Different aspects are mentioned.

 本発明の有機EL素子において、発光層は、主ピーク波長が500nm以下の蛍光発光を示す発光性化合物(以下、単に“蛍光発光性化合物”と称することもある)を含有していてもよい。 In the organic EL device of the present invention, the light-emitting layer may contain a light-emitting compound (hereinafter sometimes simply referred to as a "fluorescent compound") that exhibits fluorescent light emission with a main peak wavelength of 500 nm or less.

 主ピーク波長の測定方法は、次の通りである。測定対象となる化合物の5μmol/Lトルエン溶液を調製して石英セルに入れ、常温(300K)でこの試料の発光スペクトル(縦軸:発光強度、横軸:波長とする。)を測定する。発光スペクトルは、株式会社日立ハイテクサイエンス製の分光蛍光光度計(装置名:F-7000)により測定できる。なお、発光スペクトル測定装置は、ここで用いた装置に限定されない。
 発光スペクトルにおいて、発光強度が最大となる発光スペクトルのピーク波長を主ピーク波長とする。なお、本明細書において、主ピーク波長を蛍光発光主ピーク波長(FL-peak)と称する場合がある。
The method for measuring the main peak wavelength is as follows. A 5 μmol/L toluene solution of the compound to be measured is prepared and placed in a quartz cell, and the emission spectrum (vertical axis: emission intensity, horizontal axis: wavelength) of this sample is measured at room temperature (300K). The emission spectrum can be measured using a spectrofluorometer (device name: F-7000) manufactured by Hitachi High-Tech Science Co., Ltd. Note that the emission spectrum measuring device is not limited to the device used here.
In the emission spectrum, the peak wavelength of the emission spectrum at which the emission intensity is maximum is defined as the main peak wavelength. Note that in this specification, the main peak wavelength may be referred to as fluorescence main peak wavelength (FL-peak).

 前記蛍光発光性化合物は、上記ドーパント材料であってもよいし、上記ホスト材料であってもよい。 The fluorescent compound may be the dopant material or the host material.

 発光層が単一の層である場合、ドーパント材料とホスト材料のうち一方のみが前記蛍光発光性化合物であってもよいし、両方が前記蛍光発光性化合物であってもよい。
 また、発光層が第1発光層(陽極側)と第2発光層(陰極側)とを含む場合、第1発光層と第2発光層のうち一方のみが前記蛍光発光性化合物を含んでいてもよいし、両方の発光層が前記蛍光発光性化合物を含んでいてもよい。第1発光層が前記蛍光発光性化合物を含む場合、第1発光層に含まれるドーパント材料とホスト材料の一方のみが前記蛍光発光性化合物であってもよいし、両方が前記蛍光発光性化合物であってもよい。また、第2発光層が前記蛍光発光性化合物を含む場合、第2発光層に含まれるドーパント材料とホスト材料のうち一方のみが前記蛍光発光性化合物であってもよいし、両方が前記蛍光発光性化合物であってもよい。
When the light-emitting layer is a single layer, only one of the dopant material and the host material may be the fluorescent compound, or both may be the fluorescent compound.
Further, when the light emitting layer includes a first light emitting layer (anode side) and a second light emitting layer (cathode side), only one of the first light emitting layer and the second light emitting layer contains the fluorescent compound. Alternatively, both of the light-emitting layers may contain the fluorescent compound. When the first light-emitting layer contains the fluorescent compound, only one of the dopant material and the host material contained in the first light-emitting layer may be the fluorescent compound, or both may be the fluorescent compound. There may be. Further, when the second light emitting layer contains the fluorescent compound, only one of the dopant material and the host material contained in the second light emitting layer may be the fluorescent compound, or both may be the fluorescent compound. It may be a sexual compound.

電子輸送層
 電子輸送層は電子輸送性の高い材料(電子輸送性材料)を含む層であり、発光層と陰極の間、又は、存在する場合は、電子注入層と発光層の間に形成される。
 電子輸送層は、単層構造でもよく、2以上の層を含む多層構造でもよい。例えば、電子輸送層は第1電子輸送層(陽極側)と第2電子輸送層(陰極側)を含む2層構造であってもよい。本発明の一態様において、前記単層構造の電子輸送層は発光層に隣接していることが好ましく、また、前記多層構造中の最も陽極に近い電子輸送層、例えば、上記2層構造の第1電子輸送層、は発光層に隣接していることが好ましい。本発明の他の態様において、前記単層構造の電子輸送層と発光層の間に、又は、前記多層構造中の最も発光層に近い電子輸送層と発光層の間に、後述する正孔阻止層などを介在させてもよい。
Electron transport layer The electron transport layer is a layer containing a material with high electron transport properties (electron transport material), and is formed between the light emitting layer and the cathode or, if present, between the electron injection layer and the light emitting layer. Ru.
The electron transport layer may have a single layer structure or a multilayer structure including two or more layers. For example, the electron transport layer may have a two-layer structure including a first electron transport layer (on the anode side) and a second electron transport layer (on the cathode side). In one aspect of the present invention, the electron transport layer of the single layer structure is preferably adjacent to the light emitting layer, and the electron transport layer of the multilayer structure closest to the anode, for example, the electron transport layer of the two layer structure is adjacent to the light emitting layer. Preferably, one electron transport layer is adjacent to the light emitting layer. In another aspect of the present invention, the hole blocking described below is provided between the electron transport layer and the light emitting layer of the single layer structure, or between the electron transport layer and the light emitting layer closest to the light emitting layer in the multilayer structure. A layer or the like may be interposed.

 電子輸送層には、例えば、
(1)アルミニウム錯体、ベリリウム錯体、亜鉛錯体等の金属錯体、
(2)イミダゾール誘導体、ベンゾイミダゾール誘導体、アジン誘導体、カルバゾール誘導体、フェナントロリン誘導体等の複素芳香族化合物、
(3)高分子化合物を使用することができる。
The electron transport layer includes, for example,
(1) Metal complexes such as aluminum complexes, beryllium complexes, zinc complexes,
(2) Heteroaromatic compounds such as imidazole derivatives, benzimidazole derivatives, azine derivatives, carbazole derivatives, phenanthroline derivatives,
(3) High molecular compounds can be used.

 金属錯体としては、例えば、トリス(8-キノリノラト)アルミニウム(III)(略称:Alq)、トリス(4-メチル-8-キノリノラト)アルミニウム(略称:Almq3)、ビス(10-ヒドロキシベンゾ[h]キノリナト)ベリリウム(略称:BeBq)、ビス(2-メチル-8-キノリノラト)(4-フェニルフェノラト)アルミニウム(III)(略称:BAlq)、ビス(8-キノリノラト)亜鉛(II)(略称:Znq)、ビス[2-(2-ベンゾオキサゾリル)フェノラト]亜鉛(II)(略称:ZnPBO)、ビス[2-(2-ベンゾチアゾリル)フェノラト]亜鉛(II)(略称:ZnBTZ)が挙げられる。 Examples of metal complexes include tris(8-quinolinolato)aluminum(III) (abbreviation: Alq), tris(4-methyl-8-quinolinolato)aluminum (abbreviation: Almq3), bis(10-hydroxybenzo[h]quinolinato). ) Beryllium (abbreviation: BeBq 2 ), bis(2-methyl-8-quinolinolato)(4-phenylphenolato)aluminum(III) (abbreviation: BAlq), bis(8-quinolinolato)zinc(II) (abbreviation: Znq) ), bis[2-(2-benzoxazolyl)phenolato]zinc(II) (abbreviation: ZnPBO), and bis[2-(2-benzothiazolyl)phenolato]zinc(II) (abbreviation: ZnBTZ).

 複素芳香族化合物としては、例えば、2-(4-ビフェニリル)-5-(4-tert-ブチルフェニル)-1,3,4-オキサジアゾール(略称:PBD)、1,3-ビス[5-(ptert-ブチルフェニル)-1,3,4-オキサジアゾール-2-イル]ベンゼン(略称:OXD-7)、3-(4-tert-ブチルフェニル)-4-フェニル-5-(4-ビフェニリル)-1,2,4-トリアゾール(略称:TAZ)、3-(4-tert-ブチルフェニル)-4-(4-エチルフェニル)-5-(4-ビフェニリル)-1,2,4-トリアゾール(略称:p-EtTAZ)、バソフェナントロリン(略称:BPhen)、バソキュプロイン(略称:BCP)、4,4’-ビス(5-メチルベンゾオキサゾール-2-イル)スチルベン(略称:BzOs)が挙げられる。 Examples of the heteroaromatic compound include 2-(4-biphenylyl)-5-(4-tert-butylphenyl)-1,3,4-oxadiazole (abbreviation: PBD), 1,3-bis[5 -(ptert-butylphenyl)-1,3,4-oxadiazol-2-yl]benzene (abbreviation: OXD-7), 3-(4-tert-butylphenyl)-4-phenyl-5-(4 -biphenylyl)-1,2,4-triazole (abbreviation: TAZ), 3-(4-tert-butylphenyl)-4-(4-ethylphenyl)-5-(4-biphenylyl)-1,2,4 - Triazole (abbreviation: p-EtTAZ), bathophenanthroline (abbreviation: BPhen), bathocuproine (abbreviation: BCP), and 4,4'-bis(5-methylbenzoxazol-2-yl)stilbene (abbreviation: BzOs) are listed. It will be done.

 高分子化合物としては、例えば、ポリ[(9,9-ジヘキシルフルオレン-2,7-ジイル)-co-(ピリジン-3,5-ジイル)](略称:PF-Py)、ポリ[(9,9-ジオクチルフルオレン-2,7-ジイル)-co-(2,2’-ビピリジン-6,6’-ジイル)](略称:PF-BPy)が挙げられる。 Examples of polymer compounds include poly[(9,9-dihexylfluorene-2,7-diyl)-co-(pyridine-3,5-diyl)] (abbreviation: PF-Py), poly[(9, 9-dioctylfluorene-2,7-diyl)-co-(2,2'-bipyridine-6,6'-diyl)] (abbreviation: PF-BPy).

 上記材料は、10-6cm/Vs以上の電子移動度を有する材料である。なお、正孔輸送性よりも電子輸送性の高い材料であれば、上記以外の材料を電子輸送層に用いてもよい。 The above material has an electron mobility of 10 −6 cm 2 /Vs or more. Note that materials other than those mentioned above may be used for the electron transport layer as long as they have higher electron transport properties than hole transport properties.

電子注入層
 電子注入層は、電子注入性の高い材料を含む層である。電子注入層には、リチウム(Li)、セシウム(Cs)等のアルカリ金属、マグネシウム(Mg)、カルシウム(Ca)、ストロンチウム(Sr)等のアルカリ土類金属、ユーロピウム(Eu)、イッテルビウム(Yb)等の希土類金属、及びこれらの金属を含む化合物を用いることができる。そのような化合物としては、例えば、アルカリ金属酸化物、アルカリ金属ハロゲン化物、アルカリ金属含有有機錯体、アルカリ土類金属酸化物、アルカリ土類金属ハロゲン化物、アルカリ土類金属含有有機錯体、希土類金属酸化物、希土類金属ハロゲン化物、及び希土類金属含有有機錯体が挙げられる。また、これらの化合物を複数混合して用いることもできる。
 その他、電子輸送性を有する材料にアルカリ金属、アルカリ土類金属、またはそれらの化合物を含有させたもの、具体的にはAlq中にマグネシウム(Mg)を含有させたもの等を用いてもよい。なお、この場合には、陰極からの電子注入をより効率良く行うことができる。
 あるいは、電子注入層に、有機化合物と電子供与体(ドナー)とを混合してなる複合材料を用いてもよい。このような複合材料は、有機化合物が電子供与体から電子を受け取るため、電子注入性および電子輸送性に優れている。この場合、有機化合物としては、受け取った電子の輸送に優れた材料であることが好ましく、具体的には、例えば上述した電子輸送層を構成する材料(金属錯体や複素芳香族化合物等)を用いることができる。電子供与体としては、有機化合物に対し電子供与性を示す材料であればよい。具体的には、アルカリ金属、アルカリ土類金属及び希土類金属が好ましく、リチウム、セシウム、マグネシウム、カルシウム、エルビウム、イッテルビウム等が挙げられる。また、アルカリ金属酸化物やアルカリ土類金属酸化物が好ましく、リチウム酸化物、カルシウム酸化物、バリウム酸化物等が挙げられる。また、酸化マグネシウムのようなルイス塩基を用いることもできる。また、テトラチアフルバレン(略称:TTF)等の有機化合物を用いることもできる。
Electron Injection Layer The electron injection layer is a layer containing a material with high electron injection properties. The electron injection layer contains alkali metals such as lithium (Li) and cesium (Cs), alkaline earth metals such as magnesium (Mg), calcium (Ca), and strontium (Sr), europium (Eu), and ytterbium (Yb). Rare earth metals such as these and compounds containing these metals can be used. Examples of such compounds include alkali metal oxides, alkali metal halides, alkali metal-containing organic complexes, alkaline earth metal oxides, alkaline earth metal halides, alkaline earth metal-containing organic complexes, and rare earth metal oxides. Examples include rare earth metal halides, and rare earth metal-containing organic complexes. Moreover, a plurality of these compounds can also be used in combination.
In addition, a material having an electron transport property containing an alkali metal, an alkaline earth metal, or a compound thereof, specifically a material containing magnesium (Mg) in Alq, may be used. Note that in this case, electron injection from the cathode can be performed more efficiently.
Alternatively, a composite material made of a mixture of an organic compound and an electron donor may be used for the electron injection layer. Such a composite material has excellent electron injection and electron transport properties because the organic compound receives electrons from an electron donor. In this case, the organic compound is preferably a material that is excellent in transporting received electrons, and specifically, for example, the above-mentioned materials constituting the electron transport layer (metal complexes, heteroaromatic compounds, etc.) are used. be able to. The electron donor may be any material as long as it exhibits electron donating properties to organic compounds. Specifically, alkali metals, alkaline earth metals, and rare earth metals are preferred, and examples include lithium, cesium, magnesium, calcium, erbium, and ytterbium. Moreover, alkali metal oxides and alkaline earth metal oxides are preferable, and examples thereof include lithium oxide, calcium oxide, barium oxide, and the like. Additionally, Lewis bases such as magnesium oxide can also be used. Moreover, organic compounds such as tetrathiafulvalene (abbreviation: TTF) can also be used.

陰極
 陰極には、仕事関数の小さい(具体的には3.8eV以下)金属、合金、電気伝導性化合物、およびこれらの混合物などを用いることが好ましい。このような陰極材料の具体例としては、元素周期表の第1族または第2族に属する元素、即ちリチウム(Li)やセシウム(Cs)等のアルカリ金属、およびマグネシウム(Mg)、カルシウム(Ca)、ストロンチウム(Sr)等のアルカリ土類金属、およびこれらを含む合金(例えば、MgAg、AlLi)、ユーロピウム(Eu)、イッテルビウム(Yb)等の希土類金属およびこれらを含む合金等が挙げられる。
 なお、アルカリ金属、アルカリ土類金属、これらを含む合金を用いて陰極を形成する場合には、真空蒸着法やスパッタリング法を用いることができる。また、銀ペーストなどを用いる場合には、塗布法やインクジェット法などを用いることができる。
 なお、電子注入層を設けることにより、仕事関数の大小に関わらず、Al、Ag、ITO、グラフェン、珪素もしくは酸化珪素を含有した酸化インジウム-酸化スズ等様々な導電性材料を用いて陰極を形成することができる。これらの導電性材料は、スパッタリング法やインクジェット法、スピンコート法等を用いて成膜することができる。
Cathode It is preferable to use a metal, an alloy, an electrically conductive compound, a mixture thereof, or the like having a small work function (specifically, 3.8 eV or less) for the cathode. Specific examples of such cathode materials include elements belonging to Group 1 or 2 of the periodic table of elements, such as alkali metals such as lithium (Li) and cesium (Cs), and magnesium (Mg) and calcium (Ca). ), alkaline earth metals such as strontium (Sr), alloys containing these (for example, MgAg, AlLi), rare earth metals such as europium (Eu), ytterbium (Yb), and alloys containing these.
In addition, when forming a cathode using an alkali metal, an alkaline earth metal, or an alloy containing these, a vacuum evaporation method or a sputtering method can be used. Furthermore, when using silver paste or the like, a coating method, an inkjet method, etc. can be used.
By providing an electron injection layer, the cathode can be formed using various conductive materials such as Al, Ag, ITO, graphene, silicon, or indium oxide-tin oxide containing silicon oxide, regardless of the size of the work function. can do. These conductive materials can be formed into films using a sputtering method, an inkjet method, a spin coating method, or the like.

絶縁層
 有機EL素子は、超薄膜に電界を印加するために、リークやショートによる画素欠陥が生じやすい。これを防止するために、一対の電極間に絶縁性の薄膜層からなる絶縁層を挿入してもよい。
 絶縁層に用いられる材料としては、例えば、酸化アルミニウム、弗化リチウム、酸化リチウム、弗化セシウム、酸化セシウム、酸化マグネシウム、弗化マグネシウム、酸化カルシウム、弗化カルシウム、窒化アルミニウム、酸化チタン、酸化珪素、酸化ゲルマニウム、窒化珪素、窒化ホウ素、酸化モリブデン、酸化ルテニウム、酸化バナジウム等が挙げられる。なお、これらの混合物や積層物を用いてもよい。
Insulating Layer Since organic EL elements apply electric fields to ultra-thin films, pixel defects are likely to occur due to leakage or short circuits. In order to prevent this, an insulating layer made of an insulating thin film layer may be inserted between the pair of electrodes.
Examples of materials used for the insulating layer include aluminum oxide, lithium fluoride, lithium oxide, cesium fluoride, cesium oxide, magnesium oxide, magnesium fluoride, calcium oxide, calcium fluoride, aluminum nitride, titanium oxide, and silicon oxide. , germanium oxide, silicon nitride, boron nitride, molybdenum oxide, ruthenium oxide, vanadium oxide, and the like. Note that a mixture or a laminate of these may also be used.

スペース層
 上記スペース層とは、例えば、蛍光発光層と燐光発光層とを積層する場合に、燐光発光層で生成する励起子を蛍光発光層に拡散させない、あるいは、キャリアバランスを調整する目的で、蛍光発光層と燐光発光層との間に設けられる層である。また、スペース層は、複数の燐光発光層の間に設けることもできる。
 スペース層は発光層間に設けられるため、電子輸送性と正孔輸送性を兼ね備える材料であることが好ましい。また、隣接する燐光発光層内の三重項エネルギーの拡散を防ぐため、三重項エネルギーが2.6eV以上であることが好ましい。スペース層に用いられる材料としては、上述の正孔輸送層に用いられるものと同様のものが挙げられる。
Space layer The above-mentioned space layer is, for example, for the purpose of preventing excitons generated in the phosphorescent layer from diffusing into the fluorescent layer or adjusting carrier balance when a fluorescent layer and a phosphorescent layer are stacked. This is a layer provided between a fluorescent layer and a phosphorescent layer. Moreover, a space layer can also be provided between a plurality of phosphorescence-emitting layers.
Since the space layer is provided between the light-emitting layers, it is preferably made of a material that has both electron-transporting properties and hole-transporting properties. Further, in order to prevent triplet energy from diffusing in adjacent phosphorescent emitting layers, it is preferable that the triplet energy is 2.6 eV or more. Examples of the material used for the space layer include the same materials as those used for the hole transport layer described above.

阻止層
 電子阻止層、正孔阻止層、励起子阻止層などの阻止層を発光層に隣接して設けてもいい。電子阻止層とは発光層から正孔輸送層へ電子が漏れることを防ぐ層であり、正孔阻止層とは発光層から電子輸送層へ正孔が漏れることを防ぐ層である。励起子阻止層は発光層で生成した励起子が周辺の層へ拡散することを防止し、励起子を発光層内に閉じ込める機能を有する。
Blocking Layer A blocking layer such as an electron blocking layer, a hole blocking layer, an exciton blocking layer, etc. may be provided adjacent to the light emitting layer. The electron blocking layer is a layer that prevents electrons from leaking from the light emitting layer to the hole transport layer, and the hole blocking layer is a layer that prevents holes from leaking from the light emitting layer to the electron transport layer. The exciton blocking layer has the function of preventing excitons generated in the light emitting layer from diffusing into surrounding layers and confining the excitons within the light emitting layer.

 前記有機EL素子の各層は従来公知の蒸着法、塗布法等により形成することができる。例えば、真空蒸着法、分子線蒸着法(MBE法)などの蒸着法、あるいは、層を形成する化合物の溶液を用いた、ディッピング法、スピンコーティング法、キャスティング法、バーコート法、ロールコート法等の塗布法による公知の方法で形成することができる。 Each layer of the organic EL element can be formed by a conventionally known vapor deposition method, coating method, or the like. For example, vapor deposition methods such as vacuum evaporation method and molecular beam evaporation method (MBE method), or dipping method, spin coating method, casting method, bar coating method, roll coating method, etc. using a solution of a compound forming a layer. It can be formed by a known coating method.

 各層の膜厚は特に制限されないが、一般に膜厚が薄すぎるとピンホール等の欠陥が生じやすく、逆に厚すぎると高い駆動電圧が必要となり効率が悪くなるため、通常5nm~10μmであり、10nm~0.2μmがより好ましい。 The film thickness of each layer is not particularly limited, but in general, if the film thickness is too thin, defects such as pinholes are likely to occur, and on the other hand, if the film thickness is too thick, a high driving voltage will be required and efficiency will deteriorate, so it is usually 5 nm to 10 μm. More preferably 10 nm to 0.2 μm.

 本発明の有機EL素子の一態様において、特に制限されるものではないが、第1正孔輸送層(陽極側)の厚さと第2正孔輸送層(陰極側)の厚さの合計は、好ましくは、30nm以上、150nm以下であり、より好ましくは、40nm以上、130nm以下である。
 また、本発明の有機EL素子の一態様において、第2正孔輸送層の厚さは、好ましくは5nm以上、より好ましくは20nm以上である。さらに好ましくは25nm以上であり、特に好ましくは30nm以上、最も好ましくは35nm以上であり、また、好ましくは100nm以下である。
 また、本発明の有機EL素子の一態様において、発光層と隣接する正孔輸送層が好ましくは5nm以上、より好ましくは20nm以上である。さらに好ましくは25nm以上であり、特に好ましくは30nm以上、最も好ましくは35nm以上であり、また、好ましくは100nm以下である。
 また、本発明の有機EL素子の一態様において、特に制限されるものではないが、第1正孔輸送層の膜厚D1と第2正孔輸送層膜厚D2は、0.3<D2/D1<4.0の関係を満たすことが好ましい。より好ましくは0.5<D2/D1<3.5の関係を満たし、さらに好ましくは0.75<D2/D1<3.0の関係を満たす。また、本発明の有機EL素子の別の一態様において、特に制限されるものではないが、前記D2/D1は、0.05<D2/D1<0.5の関係を満たしていてもよいし、0.05<D2/D1<0.3の関係を満たしていてもよいし、0.08<D2/D1<0.25の関係を満たしていてもよい。
In one embodiment of the organic EL element of the present invention, although not particularly limited, the total thickness of the first hole transport layer (anode side) and the second hole transport layer (cathode side) is: Preferably it is 30 nm or more and 150 nm or less, more preferably 40 nm or more and 130 nm or less.
Further, in one embodiment of the organic EL device of the present invention, the thickness of the second hole transport layer is preferably 5 nm or more, more preferably 20 nm or more. More preferably it is 25 nm or more, particularly preferably 30 nm or more, most preferably 35 nm or more, and preferably 100 nm or less.
Further, in one embodiment of the organic EL device of the present invention, the hole transport layer adjacent to the light emitting layer preferably has a thickness of 5 nm or more, more preferably 20 nm or more. More preferably it is 25 nm or more, particularly preferably 30 nm or more, most preferably 35 nm or more, and preferably 100 nm or less.
Further, in one embodiment of the organic EL element of the present invention, although not particularly limited, the thickness D1 of the first hole transport layer and the thickness D2 of the second hole transport layer are 0.3<D2/ It is preferable to satisfy the relationship D1<4.0. More preferably, the relationship 0.5<D2/D1<3.5 is satisfied, and even more preferably the relationship 0.75<D2/D1<3.0 is satisfied. Further, in another embodiment of the organic EL element of the present invention, the D2/D1 may satisfy the relationship 0.05<D2/D1<0.5, although it is not particularly limited. , 0.05<D2/D1<0.3, or 0.08<D2/D1<0.25.

 本発明の有機EL素子の実施態様としては、例えば、
上記2層構成の正孔輸送層を有する有機EL素子であって、
・第2正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含み、第1正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含まない第1の実施態様;
・第1正孔輸送層及び第2正孔輸送層の双方が本発明の化合物(1)を含む第2の実施態様;
・第1正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物を含み、第2正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含まない第3の実施態様;
上記3層構成の正孔輸送層を有する有機EL素子であって、
・第1正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含み、第2及び第3正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含まない第4の実施態様;
・第2正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含み、第1及び第3正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含まない第5の実施態様;
・第3正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含み、第1及び第2正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含まない第6の実施態様;
・第1及び第2正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含み、第3正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含まない第7の実施態様;
・第1及び第3正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含み、第2正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含まない第8の実施態様;
・第2及び第3正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含み、第1正孔輸送層が本発明の化合物(1)を含まない第10の実施態様;
・第1~第3正孔輸送層の全てが本発明の化合物(1)を含む第10の実施態様;
などが挙げられる。
Examples of embodiments of the organic EL device of the present invention include:
An organic EL device having the above two-layer hole transport layer,
- A first embodiment in which the second hole transport layer contains the compound (1) of the present invention and the first hole transport layer does not contain the compound (1) of the present invention;
- A second embodiment in which both the first hole transport layer and the second hole transport layer contain the compound (1) of the present invention;
- A third embodiment in which the first hole transport layer contains the compound of the present invention and the second hole transport layer does not contain the compound (1) of the present invention;
An organic EL device having a hole transport layer having the above three-layer structure,
- A fourth embodiment in which the first hole transport layer contains the compound (1) of the present invention and the second and third hole transport layers do not contain the compound (1) of the present invention;
- A fifth embodiment in which the second hole transport layer contains the compound (1) of the present invention, and the first and third hole transport layers do not contain the compound (1) of the present invention;
- A sixth embodiment in which the third hole transport layer contains the compound (1) of the present invention, and the first and second hole transport layers do not contain the compound (1) of the present invention;
- A seventh embodiment in which the first and second hole transport layers contain the compound (1) of the present invention, and the third hole transport layer does not contain the compound (1) of the present invention;
- An eighth embodiment in which the first and third hole transport layers contain the compound (1) of the present invention and the second hole transport layer does not contain the compound (1) of the present invention;
- A tenth embodiment in which the second and third hole transport layers contain the compound (1) of the present invention, and the first hole transport layer does not contain the compound (1) of the present invention;
- A tenth embodiment in which all of the first to third hole transport layers contain the compound (1) of the present invention;
Examples include.

電子機器
 前記有機EL素子は、有機ELパネルモジュール等の表示部品、テレビ、携帯電話、パーソナルコンピュータ等の表示装置、及び、照明、車両用灯具の発光装置等の電子機器に使用できる。
Electronic Equipment The organic EL element can be used in electronic equipment such as display parts such as organic EL panel modules, display devices such as televisions, mobile phones, and personal computers, and light emitting devices for lighting and vehicle lamps.

 以下、実施例を用いて本発明をさらに詳細に説明するが、本発明は以下の実施例に限定されるものではない。 Hereinafter, the present invention will be explained in more detail using Examples, but the present invention is not limited to the following Examples.

 実施例の有機EL素子の製造に用いた、式(1)で表される化合物を以下に示す。

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000248
The compound represented by formula (1) used for manufacturing the organic EL device of the example is shown below.
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000248

 比較例の有機EL素子の製造に用いた比較化合物を以下に示す。

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000249
Comparative compounds used for manufacturing organic EL devices of comparative examples are shown below.
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000249

 実施例及び比較例の有機EL素子の製造に用いた他の化合物を以下に示す。

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000250
Other compounds used in manufacturing the organic EL devices of Examples and Comparative Examples are shown below.
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000250

[有機EL素子の作製]
実施例1
 25mm×75mm×1.1mmのITO透明電極(陽極)付きガラス基板(ジオマテック株式会社製)を、イソプロピルアルコール中で5分間超音波洗浄した後、30分間UVオゾン洗浄した。ITOの膜厚は、130nmとした。
 洗浄後の透明電極付き前記ガラス基板を真空蒸着装置の基板ホルダーに装着し、まず透明電極が形成されている側の面上に透明電極を覆うようにして化合物HT-1と化合物HAとを共蒸着し、膜厚10nmの正孔注入層を形成した。なお、化合物HT-1と化合物HAとの質量比(HT-1:HA)は97:3であった。
 次に、正孔注入層上に化合物HT-1として化合物1を蒸着し、膜厚80nmの第1正孔輸送層を形成した。
 次に、この第1正孔輸送層上に化合物HT-2を蒸着し、膜厚10nmの第2正孔輸送層を形成した。
 次に、この第2正孔輸送層上に、化合物BH-1(ホスト材料)と化合物BD-1(ドーパント材料)を共蒸着し、膜厚25nmの発光層を形成した。化合物BH-1と化合物BD-1の質量比(BH-1:BD-1)は96:4であった。
 次に、この発光層の上に、化合物ET-1を蒸着して膜厚5nmの第1電子輸送層を形成した。
 次に、この第1電子輸送層上に、化合物ET-2とLiqを共蒸着して膜厚20nmの第2電子輸送層を形成した。化合物ET-2とLiqの質量比(ET-2:Liq)は50:50であった。
 次に、この第2電子輸送層上に、LiFを蒸着して膜厚1nmの電子注入層を形成した。
 次に、この電子注入層上に金属Alを蒸着して膜厚50nmの金属陰極を形成した。
 このようにして得られた実施例1の有機EL素子の層構成を以下に示す。
 ITO(130)/HT-1:HA=97:3(10)/HT-1(80)/HT-2(10)/BH-1:BD-1=96:4(25)/ET-1(5)/ET-2:Liq=50:50(20)/LiF(1)/Al(50)
 なお、上記層構成において、括弧内の数字は膜厚(nm)であり、比は質量比である。
[Production of organic EL element]
Example 1
A glass substrate (manufactured by Geomatec Co., Ltd.) with a 25 mm x 75 mm x 1.1 mm ITO transparent electrode (anode) was ultrasonically cleaned in isopropyl alcohol for 5 minutes and then UV ozone cleaned for 30 minutes. The ITO film thickness was 130 nm.
The cleaned glass substrate with a transparent electrode is mounted on a substrate holder of a vacuum evaporation apparatus, and first, compound HT-1 and compound HA are coated on the surface on which the transparent electrode is formed so as to cover the transparent electrode. A hole injection layer having a thickness of 10 nm was formed by vapor deposition. Note that the mass ratio of compound HT-1 and compound HA (HT-1:HA) was 97:3.
Next, Compound 1 was vapor-deposited as Compound HT-1 on the hole injection layer to form a first hole transport layer with a thickness of 80 nm.
Next, compound HT-2 was deposited on the first hole transport layer to form a second hole transport layer with a thickness of 10 nm.
Next, compound BH-1 (host material) and compound BD-1 (dopant material) were co-evaporated onto this second hole transport layer to form a light emitting layer with a thickness of 25 nm. The mass ratio of compound BH-1 and compound BD-1 (BH-1:BD-1) was 96:4.
Next, on this light-emitting layer, compound ET-1 was deposited to form a first electron transport layer with a thickness of 5 nm.
Next, on this first electron transport layer, compound ET-2 and Liq were co-evaporated to form a second electron transport layer having a thickness of 20 nm. The mass ratio of compound ET-2 and Liq (ET-2:Liq) was 50:50.
Next, on this second electron transport layer, LiF was evaporated to form an electron injection layer with a thickness of 1 nm.
Next, metal Al was deposited on this electron injection layer to form a metal cathode having a thickness of 50 nm.
The layer structure of the organic EL device of Example 1 thus obtained is shown below.
ITO(130)/HT-1:HA=97:3(10)/HT-1(80)/HT-2(10)/BH-1:BD-1=96:4(25)/ET-1 (5)/ET-2:Liq=50:50(20)/LiF(1)/Al(50)
In the above layer structure, the numbers in parentheses are film thicknesses (nm), and the ratios are mass ratios.

<有機EL素子の評価>
(1)外部量子効率(EQE)の測定
 作製した有機EL素子について、室温下、電流密度が10mA/cmとなるように有機EL素子に電圧を印加し、輝度計(ミノルタ社製分光輝度放射計CS-1000)を用いて輝度を測定した。その結果から外部量子効率(%)の評価を行った。
 結果を表1に示す。
<Evaluation of organic EL elements>
(1) Measurement of external quantum efficiency (EQE) A voltage was applied to the manufactured organic EL element at room temperature so that the current density was 10 mA/ cm2 , The brightness was measured using a digital camera (CS-1000). From the results, external quantum efficiency (%) was evaluated.
The results are shown in Table 1.

実施例2~5
 実施例1において、化合物HT-1として、化合物1の代わりに化合物2~5のいずれかを用いたこと以外は同様の方法で有機EL素子を作製し、外部量子効率(EQE)の評価を行った。
 結果を表1に示す。
Examples 2 to 5
An organic EL device was produced in the same manner as in Example 1, except that one of compounds 2 to 5 was used instead of compound 1 as compound HT-1, and the external quantum efficiency (EQE) was evaluated. Ta.
The results are shown in Table 1.

比較例1~4
 実施例1において、化合物HT-1として、化合物1の代わりに比較化合物1~4のいずれかを用いたこと以外は同様の方法で有機EL素子を作製し、外部量子効率(EQE)の評価を行った。
 結果を表1に示す。
Comparative examples 1 to 4
An organic EL device was prepared in the same manner as in Example 1, except that one of Comparative Compounds 1 to 4 was used instead of Compound 1 as Compound HT-1, and the external quantum efficiency (EQE) was evaluated. went.
The results are shown in Table 1.

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-T000251
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-T000251

 表1の結果から明らかなように、化合物(1)を含む実施例1~5の有機EL素子は、化合物(1)を含まない比較例1~4の有機EL素子に比べて、著しく改善された外部量子効率を示した。 As is clear from the results in Table 1, the organic EL devices of Examples 1 to 5 containing compound (1) were significantly improved compared to the organic EL devices of Comparative Examples 1 to 4 that did not contain compound (1). The external quantum efficiency was shown.

<化合物の合成>
合成例1:化合物1の合成

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000252

 アルゴン雰囲気下、N-(9,9-ジメチル-9H-フルオレン-2-イル)-9,9-ジメチル-9H-フルオレン-2-アミン4.02g(10.0mmol)、4-ブロモ-6-(t-ブチル)ジベンゾ[b,d]フラン3.03g(10.0mmol)、トリス(ジベンジリデンアセトン)ジパラジウム(0)0.183g(0.20mmol)、トリ-tert-ブチルホスホニウムテトラフルオロボラート0.232g(0.80mmol)、ナトリウム-t-ブトキシド1.35g(14.0mmol)、キシレン100mLの混合物を110℃にて7時間撹拌した。
 得られた反応液を室温に冷却した後、減圧濃縮した。得られた残渣をシリカゲルカラムクロマトグラフィー及び再結晶によって精製し、4.41gの白色固体を得た。収率は71%であった。
 マススペクトル分析の結果、m/e=624であったことから、得られた白色固体は化合物1(分子量623.84)であると同定した。 <Synthesis of compounds>
Synthesis example 1: Synthesis of compound 1
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000252

Under argon atmosphere, N-(9,9-dimethyl-9H-fluoren-2-yl)-9,9-dimethyl-9H-fluoren-2-amine 4.02 g (10.0 mmol), 4-bromo-6- (t-butyl)dibenzo[b,d]furan 3.03g (10.0mmol), tris(dibenzylideneacetone)dipalladium(0) 0.183g (0.20mmol), tri-tert-butylphosphonium tetrafluoroborate A mixture of 0.232 g (0.80 mmol) of Lato, 1.35 g (14.0 mmol) of sodium-t-butoxide, and 100 mL of xylene was stirred at 110° C. for 7 hours.
The resulting reaction solution was cooled to room temperature and then concentrated under reduced pressure. The obtained residue was purified by silica gel column chromatography and recrystallization to obtain 4.41 g of white solid. The yield was 71%.
As a result of mass spectrometry analysis, m/e=624, so the obtained white solid was identified as Compound 1 (molecular weight 623.84).

合成例2:化合物2の合成

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000253

 合成例1において、4-ブロモ-6-(t-ブチル)ジベンゾ[b,d]フランの代わりに6-ブロモ-2,4-ジ-(t-ブチル)ジベンゾ[b,d]フランを用いたこと以外は同様の操作を行い、3.58gの白色固体を得た。収率は52%であった。
 マススペクトル分析の結果、m/e=680であったことから、得られた白色固体は化合物2(分子量679.95)であると同定した。 Synthesis example 2: Synthesis of compound 2
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000253

In Synthesis Example 1, 6-bromo-2,4-di-(t-butyl)dibenzo[b,d]furan was used instead of 4-bromo-6-(t-butyl)dibenzo[b,d]furan. The same operation was performed except that 3.58 g of white solid was obtained. The yield was 52%.
As a result of mass spectrometry analysis, m/e=680, so the obtained white solid was identified as Compound 2 (molecular weight 679.95).

合成例3:化合物3の合成

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000254

 合成例1において、4-ブロモ-6-(t-ブチル)ジベンゾ[b,d]フランの代わりに4’-(t-ブチル)-2-クロロ-1,1’-ビフェニルを用いたこと以外は同様の操作を行い、3.12gの白色固体を得た。収率は51%であった。
 マススペクトル分析の結果、m/e=610であったことから、得られた白色固体は化合物3(分子量609.86)であると同定した。 Synthesis example 3: Synthesis of compound 3
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000254

Except that in Synthesis Example 1, 4'-(t-butyl)-2-chloro-1,1'-biphenyl was used instead of 4-bromo-6-(t-butyl)dibenzo[b,d]furan. The same operation was performed to obtain 3.12 g of white solid. The yield was 51%.
As a result of mass spectrometry analysis, m/e=610, so the obtained white solid was identified as compound 3 (molecular weight 609.86).

合成例4:化合物4の合成

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000255

 合成例1において、4-ブロモ-6-(t-ブチル)ジベンゾ[b,d]フランの代わりに4’’’,5’’-ジ-tert-ブチル-2-クロロ-1,1’:2’,1’’:2’’,1’’’-クォーターフェニルを用いたこと以外は同様の操作を行い、5.36gの白色固体を得た。収率は65%であった。
 マススペクトル分析の結果、m/e=818であったことから、得られた白色個体は化合物4(分子量818.16)であると同定した。 Synthesis example 4: Synthesis of compound 4
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000255

In Synthesis Example 1, 4''',5''-di-tert-butyl-2-chloro-1,1' instead of 4-bromo-6-(t-butyl)dibenzo[b,d]furan: 2',1'': The same operation was performed except that 2'',1'''-quarterphenyl was used to obtain 5.36 g of a white solid. The yield was 65%.
As a result of mass spectrometry analysis, m/e=818, so the obtained white solid was identified as compound 4 (molecular weight 818.16).

合成例5:化合物5の合成

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000256

 合成例1において、4-ブロモ-6-(t-ブチル)ジベンゾ[b,d]フランの代わりに4'',5'-ジ-tert-ブチル-2-クロロ-1,1':2',1''-テルフェニルを用いたこと以外は同様の操作を行い、5.11gの白色固体を得た。収率は69%であった。
 マススペクトル分析の結果、m/e=743であったことから、得られた白色個体は化合物5(分子量742.06)であると同定した。 Synthesis example 5: Synthesis of compound 5
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000256

In Synthesis Example 1, 4'',5'-di-tert-butyl-2-chloro-1,1':2' was used instead of 4-bromo-6-(t-butyl)dibenzo[b,d]furan. , 1''-terphenyl was used, and 5.11 g of a white solid was obtained. The yield was 69%.
As a result of mass spectrometry analysis, m/e=743, so the obtained white solid was identified as Compound 5 (molecular weight 742.06).

合成例6:化合物6の合成

Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000257

 アルゴン雰囲気下、N-(9,9-ジメチル-9H-フルオレン-2-イル)-9,9-ジメチル-9H-フルオレン-2-アミン4.02g(10.0mmol)、3,6-ジ-tert-ブチル-9-(3-クロロフェニル)-9H-カルバゾール3.90g(10.0mmol)、トリス(ジベンジリデンアセトン)ジパラジウム(0)0.183g(0.20mmol)、トリ-tert-ブチルホスホニウムテトラフルオロボラート0.232g(0.80mmol)、ナトリウム-t-ブトキシド1.35g(14.0mmol)、キシレン100mLの混合物を110℃にて17時間撹拌した。
 得られた反応液を室温に冷却した後、減圧濃縮した。得られた残渣をシリカゲルカラムクロマトグラフィー及び再結晶によって精製し、6.23gの白色固体を得た。収率は69%であった。
 マススペクトル分析の結果、m/e=755であったことから、得られた白色固体は化合物6(分子量755.06)であると同定した。 Synthesis example 6: Synthesis of compound 6
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000257

Under argon atmosphere, 4.02 g (10.0 mmol) of N-(9,9-dimethyl-9H-fluoren-2-yl)-9,9-dimethyl-9H-fluoren-2-amine, 3,6-di- tert-butyl-9-(3-chlorophenyl)-9H-carbazole 3.90 g (10.0 mmol), tris(dibenzylideneacetone)dipalladium(0) 0.183 g (0.20 mmol), tri-tert-butylphosphonium A mixture of 0.232 g (0.80 mmol) of tetrafluoroborate, 1.35 g (14.0 mmol) of sodium-t-butoxide, and 100 mL of xylene was stirred at 110° C. for 17 hours.
The resulting reaction solution was cooled to room temperature and then concentrated under reduced pressure. The obtained residue was purified by silica gel column chromatography and recrystallization to obtain 6.23 g of white solid. The yield was 69%.
As a result of mass spectrometry analysis, m/e=755, so the obtained white solid was identified as compound 6 (molecular weight 755.06).

 1、11、12 有機EL素子
 2 基板
 3 陽極
 4 陰極
 5 発光層
 5a 第1発光層
 5b 第2発光層
 6 正孔輸送帯域(正孔輸送層)
 6a 正孔注入層
 6b 第1正孔輸送層
 6c 第2正孔輸送層
 6d 第3正孔輸送層
 7 電子輸送帯域(電子輸送層)
 7a 第1電子輸送層
 7b 第2電子輸送層
 10、20、30 発光ユニット
1, 11, 12 Organic EL element 2 Substrate 3 Anode 4 Cathode 5 Light-emitting layer 5a First light-emitting layer 5b Second light-emitting layer 6 Hole transport zone (hole transport layer)
6a Hole injection layer 6b First hole transport layer 6c Second hole transport layer 6d Third hole transport layer 7 Electron transport zone (electron transport layer)
7a First electron transport layer 7b Second electron transport layer 10, 20, 30 Light emitting unit

Claims (27)

 下記式(1)で表される化合物。
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000001

[式(1)中、
 Ra1~Ra4は、それぞれ独立に、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~30のアルキル基、又は置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基であって、Ra1とRa2、及びRa3とRa4は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
 R、R、及びRb1~Rb12は、それぞれ独立に、
水素原子、ハロゲン原子、ニトロ基、シアノ基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、
-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、
-O-(R904)で表される基、
-S-(R905)で表される基、又は
-N(R906)(R907)で表される基;
 前記R901~R907は、それぞれ独立して、
水素原子、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、又は
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基;
であって、Rb1~Rb12中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
 Arは、下記式(i)~(iii)のいずれかで表される基である。]
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000002

[式(i)中、
 Rb13~Rb16は、それぞれ独立に、
水素原子、ハロゲン原子、ニトロ基、シアノ基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、
-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、
-O-(R904)で表される基、
-S-(R905)で表される基、又は
-N(R906)(R907)で表される基;
 前記R901~R907は、それぞれ独立して、
水素原子、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、又は
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基;
であって、Rb13~Rb16中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合してベンゼン環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
 Arは、置換もしくは無置換のフェニレン基、又は置換もしくは無置換のナフチレン基である。
 Arは、前記Rb13~Rb16中の隣接する2つの基が互いに結合していない場合には、置換もしくは無置換のフェニル基、又は置換もしくは無置換のナフチル基であり、前記Rb13~Rb16中の隣接する2つの基が互いに結合してベンゼン環を形成している場合には、水素原子、置換もしくは無置換のフェニル基、又は置換もしくは無置換のナフチル基である。
 n1は、0、1、又は2である。
 *1は、式(1)中に示されている窒素原子との結合位置を示す。
 n2は、1以上の整数である。
 Rは、n2が1の場合、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数3~30のアルキル基、又は置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基(但し、アダマンチル基を除く。)であって、n2が2以上の整数の場合、炭素数1~30のアルキル基、又は環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基である。
 *2は、Rの結合位置を示しており、Rは、(a)Rb13~Rb16から選択される少なくとも1種の代わりにベンゼン環に結合しているか、(b)Rb13~Rb16から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合しているか、(c)Ar及びArからなる群から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合しているか、又は、前記(a)~(c)からなる群から選択される2種以上の態様を満たす。]
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000003

[式(ii)中、
 Xは、-O-、-S-、又は-N(-R)-〔Rは、炭素数1~50のアルキル基、又は環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基である。〕である。
 Rc1、Rc2、Rb17~Rb22及びRd1~Rd6は、それぞれ独立に、
水素原子、ハロゲン原子、ニトロ基、シアノ基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、
-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、
-O-(R904)で表される基、
-S-(R905)で表される基、又は
-N(R906)(R907)で表される基;
 前記R901~R907は、それぞれ独立して、
水素原子、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、又は
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基;
であって、Rc1、Rc2及びRb17~Rb22中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
 n3は、0又は1である。
 *3は、式(1)中に示されている窒素原子との結合位置を示す。
 *4及び*5は、Rd1~Rd6のいずれかの代わりにベンゼン環に結合していることを示しており、それぞれ異なる位置に結合している。但し、n3が0のときは、*3と*6とが*4及び*5を介さずに直結する。
 *6は、Rb17~Rb19のいずれかの代わりにベンゼン環に結合していることを示す。
 Ry1は、炭素数1~30のアルキル基、又は環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基である。
 n4は、1以上の整数である。
 *7は、Ry1の結合位置を示しており、Ry1は、(d)Rc1、Rc2及びRb17~Rb22から選択される少なくとも1種の代わりにベンゼン環に結合しているか、(e)Rc1、Rc2、R及びRb17~Rb22から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合しているか、又は、前記(d)及び前記(e)の両方の態様を満たす。]
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000004

[式(iii)中、
 Rb23~Rb30及びRe1~Re5は、それぞれ独立に、
水素原子、ハロゲン原子、ニトロ基、シアノ基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルケニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数2~50のアルキニル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基、
-Si(R901)(R902)(R903)で表される基、
-O-(R904)で表される基、
-S-(R905)で表される基、又は
-N(R906)(R907)で表される基;
 前記R901~R907は、それぞれ独立して、
水素原子、
置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~50のシクロアルキル基、
置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数6~50のアリール基、又は
置換もしくは無置換の環形成原子数5~50のヘテロアリール基;
であって、Rb23~Rb30中の隣接する2つの基は、互いに結合して環を形成してもよいし、互いに結合していなくてもよい。
 *8は、式(1)中に示されている窒素原子との結合位置を示す。
 *9は、式(iii)中に示されている窒素原子がRe1~Re5のいずれかの代わりにベンゼン環に結合していることを示している。
 Ry2は、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~30のアルキル基、又は置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~30のシクロアルキル基である。
 n5は、1以上の整数である。
 *10は、Ry2の結合位置を示しており、Ry2は、(f)Rb23~Rb30から選択される少なくとも1種の代わりにベンゼン環に結合しているか、(g)Rb23~Rb30から選択される少なくとも1種の基に結合している、又は、前記(f)及び前記(g)の両方の態様を満たす。]
A compound represented by the following formula (1).
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000001

[In formula (1),
R a1 to R a4 are each independently a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms, and R a1 and R a2 , and R a3 and R a4 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
R 1 , R 2 , and R b1 to R b12 are each independently,
Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ),
A group represented by -O-(R 904 ),
A group represented by -S-(R 905 ) or a group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 );
The above R 901 to R 907 are each independently,
hydrogen atom,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
A substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
Two adjacent groups in R b1 to R b12 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
Ar 1 is a group represented by any of the following formulas (i) to (iii). ]
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000002

[In formula (i),
R b13 to R b16 are each independently,
Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ),
A group represented by -O-(R 904 ),
A group represented by -S-(R 905 ) or a group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 );
The above R 901 to R 907 are each independently,
hydrogen atom,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
A substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
Two adjacent groups in R b13 to R b16 may be bonded to each other to form a benzene ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
Ar 2 is a substituted or unsubstituted phenylene group or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthylene group.
Ar 3 is a substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group, or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group when two adjacent groups in R b13 to R b16 are not bonded to each other ; When two adjacent groups in R b16 are bonded to each other to form a benzene ring, it is a hydrogen atom, a substituted or unsubstituted phenyl group, or a substituted or unsubstituted naphthyl group.
n1 is 0, 1, or 2.
*1 indicates the bonding position with the nitrogen atom shown in formula (1).
n2 is an integer of 1 or more.
When n2 is 1, R x is a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 3 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms (excluding an adamantyl group). When n2 is an integer of 2 or more, it is an alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
*2 indicates the bonding position of R x , and R x is (a) bonded to the benzene ring instead of at least one selected from R b13 to R b16 , or (b) R x (c) is bonded to at least one group selected from the group consisting of Ar 2 and Ar 3 , or ( a ) - Meets two or more aspects selected from the group consisting of (c). ]
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000003

[In formula (ii),
X is -O-, -S-, or -N(-R 3 )- [R 3 is an alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms or an aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms. ].
R c1 , R c2 , R b17 to R b22 and R d1 to R d6 are each independently,
Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ),
A group represented by -O-(R 904 ),
A group represented by -S-(R 905 ) or a group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 );
The above R 901 to R 907 are each independently,
hydrogen atom,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
A substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
Two adjacent groups in R c1 , R c2 and R b17 to R b22 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
n3 is 0 or 1.
*3 indicates the bonding position with the nitrogen atom shown in formula (1).
*4 and *5 indicate that they are bonded to the benzene ring instead of any one of R d1 to R d6 , and are bonded to different positions, respectively. However, when n3 is 0, *3 and *6 are directly connected without going through *4 and *5.
*6 indicates that it is bonded to the benzene ring instead of any one of R b17 to R b19 .
R y1 is an alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms or a cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
n4 is an integer of 1 or more.
*7 indicates the bonding position of R y1 , and R y1 is bonded to the benzene ring instead of (d) at least one selected from R c1 , R c2 and R b17 to R b22 ; (e) It is bonded to at least one group selected from R c1 , R c2 , R 3 and R b17 to R b22 , or satisfies both aspects (d) and (e) above. ]
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000004

[In formula (iii),
R b23 to R b30 and R e1 to R e5 are each independently,
Hydrogen atom, halogen atom, nitro group, cyano group,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkenyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted alkynyl group having 2 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
A group represented by -Si(R 901 )(R 902 )(R 903 ),
A group represented by -O-(R 904 ),
A group represented by -S-(R 905 ) or a group represented by -N(R 906 )(R 907 );
The above R 901 to R 907 are each independently,
hydrogen atom,
Substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms,
a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 50 ring carbon atoms,
A substituted or unsubstituted aryl group having 6 to 50 ring carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted heteroaryl group having 5 to 50 ring atoms;
Two adjacent groups in R b23 to R b30 may be bonded to each other to form a ring, or may not be bonded to each other.
*8 indicates the bonding position with the nitrogen atom shown in formula (1).
*9 indicates that the nitrogen atom shown in formula (iii) is bonded to the benzene ring instead of any one of R e1 to R e5 .
R y2 is a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 30 carbon atoms, or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 30 ring carbon atoms.
n5 is an integer of 1 or more.
*10 indicates the bonding position of R y2 , and R y2 is bonded to the benzene ring instead of (f) at least one selected from R b23 to R b30 , or (g) R b23 to R b30. It is bonded to at least one group selected from R b30 , or satisfies both aspects (f) and (g) above. ]
 下記式(1-1)又は(1-2)で表される、請求項1に記載の化合物。
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000005

(式(1-1)及び式(1-2)中の各基の定義は、前記式(1)において定義した通りである。)
The compound according to claim 1, which is represented by the following formula (1-1) or (1-2).
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000005

(The definitions of each group in formula (1-1) and formula (1-2) are as defined in formula (1) above.)
 下記式(1-3)又は(1-4)で表される、請求項1に記載の化合物。
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000006

(式(1-3)及び式(1-4)中の各基の定義は、前記式(1)において定義した通りである。)
The compound according to claim 1, which is represented by the following formula (1-3) or (1-4).
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000006

(The definitions of each group in formula (1-3) and formula (1-4) are as defined in formula (1) above.)
 下記式(1-5)又は(1-6)で表される、請求項1に記載の化合物。
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000007

(式(1-5)及び式(1-6)中の各基の定義は、前記式(1)において定義した通りである。)
The compound according to claim 1, which is represented by the following formula (1-5) or (1-6).
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000007

(The definitions of each group in formula (1-5) and formula (1-6) are as defined in formula (1) above.)
 下記式(1-7)、(1-8)又は(1-9)で表される、請求項1に記載の化合物。
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000008

(式(1-7)、式(1-8)及び式(1-9)中の各基の定義は、前記式(1)において定義した通りである。)
The compound according to claim 1, which is represented by the following formula (1-7), (1-8) or (1-9).
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000008

(The definitions of each group in formula (1-7), formula (1-8) and formula (1-9) are as defined in formula (1) above.)
 R、Rが、それぞれ独立に、水素原子、又は置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基である、請求項1~5のいずれか1項に記載の化合物。 The compound according to any one of claims 1 to 5, wherein R 1 and R 2 are each independently a hydrogen atom or a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms.  Rb1~Rb12が、それぞれ独立に、水素原子、又は置換もしくは無置換の炭素数1~50のアルキル基であり、Rb1~Rb12中の隣接する2つの基が、互いに結合して環を形成しているか、又は、互いに結合していない、請求項1~6のいずれか1項に記載の化合物。 R b1 to R b12 are each independently a hydrogen atom or a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 1 to 50 carbon atoms, and two adjacent groups among R b1 to R b12 are bonded to each other to form a ring. 7. The compounds according to any one of claims 1 to 6, which form or are not bonded to each other.  Arが前記式(i)で表される基である、請求項1~7のいずれか1項に記載の化合物。 The compound according to any one of claims 1 to 7, wherein Ar 1 is a group represented by the formula (i).  Arが前記式(ii)で表される基である、請求項1~7のいずれか1項に記載の化合物。 The compound according to any one of claims 1 to 7, wherein Ar 1 is a group represented by the formula (ii).  前記式(i)で表される基が、下記式(i-1)又は(i-5)で表される基である、請求項1~8のいずれか1項に記載の化合物。
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000009

(式(i-1)及び(i-5)中の各基の定義は、前記式(i)において定義した通りである。式中、Arと記載されているベンゼン環は、Arがベンゼン環であることを示す。)
The compound according to any one of claims 1 to 8, wherein the group represented by the formula (i) is a group represented by the following formula (i-1) or (i-5).
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000009

(The definitions of each group in formulas (i-1) and (i-5) are as defined in formula (i) above. In the formula, the benzene ring described as Ar 2 is (Indicates that it is a benzene ring.)
 前記式(i)で表される基が、下記式(i-2)~(i-4)のいずれかで表される基である、請求項1~8のいずれか1項に記載の化合物。
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000010

(式(i-2)~(i-4)中の各基の定義は、前記式(i)において定義した通りである。前記式(i-2)~(i-4)中に記載されているナフタレン環において、置換基が記載されていない部位は、水素原子が結合していてもよいし、Rが結合していてもよいし、置換基が結合していてもよい。また、当該置換基にRが結合していてもよい。)
The compound according to any one of claims 1 to 8, wherein the group represented by formula (i) is a group represented by any of the following formulas (i-2) to (i-4). .
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000010

(The definitions of each group in formulas (i-2) to (i-4) are as defined in formula (i) above. In the naphthalene ring in which no substituent is described, a hydrogen atom may be bonded, R x may be bonded, or a substituent may be bonded to a site where no substituent is described. R x may be bonded to the substituent.)
 n2が1の場合、Rが、置換もしくは無置換の炭素数3~10のアルキル基、置換もしくは無置換の環形成炭素数3~9のシクロアルキル基である、請求項1~11のいずれか1項に記載の化合物。 Any one of claims 1 to 11, wherein when n2 is 1, R x is a substituted or unsubstituted alkyl group having 3 to 10 carbon atoms or a substituted or unsubstituted cycloalkyl group having 3 to 9 ring carbon atoms. The compound according to item 1.  前記式(ii)で表される基が、下記式(ii-1)で表される基である、請求項1~7及び9のいずれか1項に記載の化合物。
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000011

(式(ii-1)中の各基の定義は、前記式(ii)において定義した通りである。)
The compound according to any one of claims 1 to 7 and 9, wherein the group represented by the formula (ii) is a group represented by the following formula (ii-1).
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000011

(The definitions of each group in formula (ii-1) are as defined in formula (ii) above.)
 前記式(ii)で表される基が、下記式(ii-2)で表される基である、請求項1~7及び9のいずれか1項に記載の化合物。
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000012

(式(ii-2)中の各基の定義は、前記式(ii)において定義した通りである。)
The compound according to any one of claims 1 to 7 and 9, wherein the group represented by the formula (ii) is a group represented by the following formula (ii-2).
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000012

(The definitions of each group in formula (ii-2) are as defined in formula (ii) above.)
 前記式(ii)で表される基が、下記式(ii-3)~(ii-5)のいずれかで表される基である、請求項1~7及び9のいずれか1項に記載の化合物。
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000013

(式(ii-3)及び式(ii-4)中の各基の定義は、前記式(ii)において定義した通りである。)
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000014

(式(ii-5)中の各基の定義は、前記式(ii)において定義した通りである。)
According to any one of claims 1 to 7 and 9, wherein the group represented by formula (ii) is a group represented by any of the following formulas (ii-3) to (ii-5). compound.
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000013

(The definitions of each group in formula (ii-3) and formula (ii-4) are as defined in formula (ii) above.)
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000014

(The definitions of each group in formula (ii-5) are as defined in formula (ii) above.)
 前記式(ii)で表される基が、下記式(ii-6)で表される基である、請求項1~7及び9のいずれか1項に記載の化合物。
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000015

(式(ii-6)中の各基の定義は、前記式(ii)において定義した通りである。)
The compound according to any one of claims 1 to 7 and 9, wherein the group represented by the formula (ii) is a group represented by the following formula (ii-6).
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000015

(The definitions of each group in formula (ii-6) are as defined in formula (ii) above.)
 前記式(ii)で表される基が、下記式(ii-7)で表される基である、請求項1~7及び9のいずれか1項に記載の化合物。
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000016

(式(ii-7)中の各基の定義は、前記式(ii)において定義した通りである。)
The compound according to any one of claims 1 to 7 and 9, wherein the group represented by the formula (ii) is a group represented by the following formula (ii-7).
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000016

(The definitions of each group in formula (ii-7) are as defined in formula (ii) above.)
 前記式(iii)で表される基が、下記式(iii-1)~(iii-3)のいずれかで表される基である、請求項1~7のいずれか1項に記載の化合物。
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000017

(式(iii-1)及び式(iii-2)中の各基の定義は、前記式(iii)において定義した通りである。)
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000018

(式(iii-3)中の各基の定義は、前記式(iii)において定義した通りである。)
The compound according to any one of claims 1 to 7, wherein the group represented by formula (iii) is a group represented by any of the following formulas (iii-1) to (iii-3). .
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000017

(The definitions of each group in formula (iii-1) and formula (iii-2) are as defined in formula (iii) above.)
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000018

(The definitions of each group in formula (iii-3) are as defined in formula (iii) above.)
 分子中に1つ以上の重水素原子を有する、請求項1~18のいずれか1項に記載の化合物。 The compound according to any one of claims 1 to 18, which has one or more deuterium atoms in the molecule.  下記の化合物1~6のいずれか1つである、請求項1に記載の化合物。
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000019
The compound according to claim 1, which is any one of the following compounds 1 to 6.
Figure JPOXMLDOC01-appb-C000019
 陽極、陰極、及び該陽極と陰極の間に配置された有機層を含み、該有機層は発光層を含み、該有機層の少なくとも1層が請求項1~20のいずれか1項に記載の化合物を含む、有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子。 comprising an anode, a cathode, and an organic layer disposed between the anode and the cathode, the organic layer comprising a light emitting layer, and at least one of the organic layers according to any one of claims 1 to 20. An organic electroluminescent device containing a compound.  前記有機層が前記陽極と前記発光層の間に正孔輸送帯域を含み、前記正孔輸送帯域が化合物(1)を含む、請求項21に記載の有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子。 The organic electroluminescent device according to claim 21, wherein the organic layer includes a hole transport zone between the anode and the light emitting layer, and the hole transport zone includes compound (1).  前記正孔輸送帯域が陽極側の第1正孔輸送層と陰極側の第2正孔輸送層を含み、
 前記第1正孔輸送層及び前記第2正孔輸送層の少なくとも一方が請求項1~20のいずれか1項に記載の化合物を含む、請求項22に記載の有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子。
The hole transport zone includes a first hole transport layer on the anode side and a second hole transport layer on the cathode side,
The organic electroluminescent device according to claim 22, wherein at least one of the first hole transport layer and the second hole transport layer contains the compound according to any one of claims 1 to 20.
 少なくとも前記第1正孔輸送層が請求項1~20のいずれか1項に記載の化合物を含む、請求項23に記載の有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子。 The organic electroluminescent device according to claim 23, wherein at least the first hole transport layer contains the compound according to any one of claims 1 to 20.  前記第1正孔輸送層の厚さと前記第2正孔輸送層の厚さの合計が、30nm以上、150nm以下である、請求項23又は24に記載の有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子。 The organic electroluminescent device according to claim 23 or 24, wherein the total thickness of the first hole transport layer and the second hole transport layer is 30 nm or more and 150 nm or less.  前記発光層が単一の層である、請求項21~25のいずれか1項に記載の有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子。 The organic electroluminescent device according to any one of claims 21 to 25, wherein the light emitting layer is a single layer.  請求項21~26に記載の有機エレクトロルミネッセンス素子を含む、電子機器。 An electronic device comprising the organic electroluminescent device according to claims 21 to 26.
PCT/JP2023/029232 2022-08-12 2023-08-10 Organic electroluminescent element and electronic appliance Ceased WO2024034659A1 (en)

Priority Applications (2)

Application Number Priority Date Filing Date Title
CN202380057985.9A CN119654309A (en) 2022-08-12 2023-08-10 Organic electroluminescent element and electronic device
KR1020257002290A KR20250020705A (en) 2022-08-12 2023-08-10 Organic electroluminescent devices and electronic devices

Applications Claiming Priority (2)

Application Number Priority Date Filing Date Title
JP2022128815 2022-08-12
JP2022-128815 2022-08-12

Publications (1)

Publication Number Publication Date
WO2024034659A1 true WO2024034659A1 (en) 2024-02-15

Family

ID=89851673

Family Applications (1)

Application Number Title Priority Date Filing Date
PCT/JP2023/029232 Ceased WO2024034659A1 (en) 2022-08-12 2023-08-10 Organic electroluminescent element and electronic appliance

Country Status (3)

Country Link
KR (1) KR20250020705A (en)
CN (1) CN119654309A (en)
WO (1) WO2024034659A1 (en)

Cited By (1)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
CN118373748A (en) * 2024-06-24 2024-07-23 浙江华显光电科技有限公司 Organic compound, OLED with organic compound and application of organic compound

Citations (10)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
CN110577510A (en) * 2018-06-07 2019-12-17 江苏三月光电科技有限公司 A compound based on bis-dimethylfluorene-substituted aniline and its prepared organic electroluminescent device
US20200321525A1 (en) * 2019-04-02 2020-10-08 Material Science Co., Ltd. Organic compound and organic electroluminescent device including the same
US20200335698A1 (en) * 2019-04-17 2020-10-22 Lg Display Co., Ltd. Novel compound and organic light emitting device
CN112390768A (en) * 2021-01-19 2021-02-23 南京高光半导体材料有限公司 Compound and organic electroluminescent device
US20210202843A1 (en) * 2019-12-31 2021-07-01 Nanjing Topto Semiconductor Material Co., Ltd. Novel organic electroluminescent compound and organic electroluminescent device
KR20210120528A (en) * 2020-03-27 2021-10-07 주식회사 엘지화학 Novel compound and organic light emitting device comprising the same
KR20210120527A (en) * 2020-03-27 2021-10-07 주식회사 엘지화학 Novel compound and organic light emitting device comprising the same
CN113788759A (en) * 2021-09-17 2021-12-14 长春海谱润斯科技股份有限公司 Triarylamine compound containing fluorene group and organic electroluminescent device thereof
KR102374470B1 (en) * 2021-07-21 2022-03-15 덕산네오룩스 주식회사 Compound for organic electronic element, organic electronic element using the same, and an electronic device thereof
CN114436863A (en) * 2020-11-05 2022-05-06 北京鼎材科技有限公司 Compound and application thereof

Family Cites Families (5)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
KR20250140117A (en) 2013-07-30 2025-09-24 메르크 파텐트 게엠베하 Materials for electronic devices
CN105906547A (en) 2016-04-21 2016-08-31 吉林奥来德光电材料股份有限公司 Carbazole derivative, and preparation method and organic electroluminescent device thereof
CN111548278B (en) 2019-12-31 2021-05-28 南京高光半导体材料有限公司 A Novel Organic Electroluminescent Compound and Organic Electroluminescent Device
KR102828607B1 (en) 2020-01-29 2025-07-01 주식회사 엘지화학 Novel compound and organic light emitting device comprising the same
KR102817855B1 (en) 2020-03-27 2025-06-09 주식회사 엘지화학 Novel compound and organic light emitting device comprising the same

Patent Citations (10)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
CN110577510A (en) * 2018-06-07 2019-12-17 江苏三月光电科技有限公司 A compound based on bis-dimethylfluorene-substituted aniline and its prepared organic electroluminescent device
US20200321525A1 (en) * 2019-04-02 2020-10-08 Material Science Co., Ltd. Organic compound and organic electroluminescent device including the same
US20200335698A1 (en) * 2019-04-17 2020-10-22 Lg Display Co., Ltd. Novel compound and organic light emitting device
US20210202843A1 (en) * 2019-12-31 2021-07-01 Nanjing Topto Semiconductor Material Co., Ltd. Novel organic electroluminescent compound and organic electroluminescent device
KR20210120528A (en) * 2020-03-27 2021-10-07 주식회사 엘지화학 Novel compound and organic light emitting device comprising the same
KR20210120527A (en) * 2020-03-27 2021-10-07 주식회사 엘지화학 Novel compound and organic light emitting device comprising the same
CN114436863A (en) * 2020-11-05 2022-05-06 北京鼎材科技有限公司 Compound and application thereof
CN112390768A (en) * 2021-01-19 2021-02-23 南京高光半导体材料有限公司 Compound and organic electroluminescent device
KR102374470B1 (en) * 2021-07-21 2022-03-15 덕산네오룩스 주식회사 Compound for organic electronic element, organic electronic element using the same, and an electronic device thereof
CN113788759A (en) * 2021-09-17 2021-12-14 长春海谱润斯科技股份有限公司 Triarylamine compound containing fluorene group and organic electroluminescent device thereof

Cited By (1)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
CN118373748A (en) * 2024-06-24 2024-07-23 浙江华显光电科技有限公司 Organic compound, OLED with organic compound and application of organic compound

Also Published As

Publication number Publication date
KR20250020705A (en) 2025-02-11
CN119654309A (en) 2025-03-18

Similar Documents

Publication Publication Date Title
JP7525580B2 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescence device, organic electroluminescence device and electronic device
JP7671733B2 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescence device, organic electroluminescence device and electronic device
JP7620576B2 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescence device, organic electroluminescence device and electronic device
JP7538360B2 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescence device, organic electroluminescence device, and electronic device
WO2022250103A1 (en) Compound, organic electroluminescent element material, organic electroluminescent element, and electronic device
JP2025148398A (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescence device, organic electroluminescence device, and electronic device
WO2024034659A1 (en) Organic electroluminescent element and electronic appliance
JP7351039B2 (en) Compounds, materials for organic electroluminescent devices, organic electroluminescent devices and electronic devices
JP7411122B2 (en) Compounds, materials for organic electroluminescent devices, organic electroluminescent devices and electronic devices
WO2022259886A1 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescent elements, organic electroluminescent element and electronic device
WO2022230967A1 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescent elements, organic electroluminescent element, and electronic device
JP7636640B2 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescence device, organic electroluminescence device and electronic device
JP7606539B2 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescence device, organic electroluminescence device and electronic device
WO2023195482A1 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescent elements, organic electroluminescent element, and electronic device
WO2025033037A1 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescent element, organic electroluminescent element, and electronic device
WO2024253073A1 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescent element, organic electroluminescent element, and electronic device
WO2025079668A1 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescent elements, organic electroluminescent element, and electronic device
WO2023223855A1 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescent elements, organic electroluminescent element, and electronic device
WO2023199960A1 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescent elements, organic electroluminescent element, and electronic device
WO2024171783A1 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescent element, organic electroluminescent element, and electronic device
WO2025100228A1 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescent element, organic electroluminescent element, and electronic device
JP2024158268A (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescence device, organic electroluminescence device and electronic device
JP2023137769A (en) Organic electroluminescencent elements and electronic devices
WO2025142879A1 (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescent element, organic electroluminescent element, and electronic device
JP2025002721A (en) Compound, material for organic electroluminescence device, organic electroluminescence device and electronic device

Legal Events

Date Code Title Description
121 Ep: the epo has been informed by wipo that ep was designated in this application

Ref document number: 23852621

Country of ref document: EP

Kind code of ref document: A1

ENP Entry into the national phase

Ref document number: 20257002290

Country of ref document: KR

Kind code of ref document: A

WWE Wipo information: entry into national phase

Ref document number: 202380057985.9

Country of ref document: CN

WWP Wipo information: published in national office

Ref document number: 1020257002290

Country of ref document: KR

NENP Non-entry into the national phase

Ref country code: DE

WWP Wipo information: published in national office

Ref document number: 202380057985.9

Country of ref document: CN

122 Ep: pct application non-entry in european phase

Ref document number: 23852621

Country of ref document: EP

Kind code of ref document: A1

NENP Non-entry into the national phase

Ref country code: JP